Correspondences
Online Journal for the
Academic Study of Western Esotericism
Editors
Jimmy Elwing and Aren Roukema
4 (2016)
© Contributing authors 2016
This work is licensed under a Creative Commons
Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License,
http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc/4.0/
All articles are available at http://www.correspondencesjournal.com
Editorial contacts:
Jimmy Elwing: jimmy.elwing@correspondencesjournal.com
Aren Roukema: aren.roukema@correspondencesjournal.com
Associate Editor
Allan Johnson: allan.johnson@correspondencesjournal.com
Book Review Editor
Egil Asprem: egil.asprem@correspondencesjournal.com
ISSN 2053-7158 (Online)
Editorial board: Franscesco Baroni (Université de Lausanne), Henrik Bogdan (University of
Gothenburg), Juan Pablo Bubello (Universidad de Buenos Aires), Dylan Burns (Universität
Leipzig), Peter Forshaw (Universiteit van Amsterdam), Christian Giudice (University of
Gothenburg), Kennet Granholm (Stockholm, Sweden), Amy Hale (Helix Education), Boaz
Huss (Ben-Gurion University of Negev), Birgit Menzel (Universität Mainz).
Contents
Editorial: A Good Year for Correspondences
Research Articles
EGIL ASPREM. Esotericism and the Scholastic Imagination:
The Origins of Esoteric Practice in Christian Kataphatic Spirituality
JULIAN STRUBE. The “Baphomet” of Eliphas Lévi:
Its Meaning and Historical Context
BOAz HUSS. Translations of the zohar: Historical Contexts and
Ideological Frameworks
Book Reviews
Kennet Granholm. Dark Enlightenment: The Historical, Sociological and
Discursive Contexts of Contemporary Esoteric Magic.
Reviewed by AMY HALE
Abraham von Worms. The Book of Abramelin: A New Translation.
Reviewed by KEITH CANTú
Henrik Bogdan and Jan A.M. Snoek (eds.). Handbook of Freemasonry.
Reviewed by PETER OLSSON
Philippa Townsend and Moulie Vidas (eds.). Revelation, Literature,
and Community in Late Antiquity.
Reviewed by DYLAN M. BURNS
Olav Hammer and Mikael Rothstein (eds.). Handbook of the Theosophical Current.
Reviewed by CHRISTOPHER A. PLAISANCE
Asbjørn Dyrendal, James R. Lewis, and Jesper Aa. Petersen.
The Invention of Satanism.
Reviewed by CIMMINNEE HOLT
1
3
37
81
129
134
138
143
148
152
Correspondences 4 (2016) 1–2
ISSN: 2053-7158 (Online)
correspondencesjournal.com
Editorial:
A Good Year for Correspondences
Aren Roukema
E-mail: aren.roukema@correspondencesjournal.com
It’s unclear at the moment how history will look back on 2016, but it was an
exciting year for Correspondences. Our long term efforts to solidify our ledging
project gained traction in March, when we received almost 400 euros through the
Sponsorship Program for Independent Scholarly Initiatives, a development grant
offered by the European Society for the Study of Western Esotericism. This grant
provides us with funding for three years of web hosting, as well as the inancial
resources needed to secure membership with professional open access databases,
a move which will make our content more easily searchable and accessible.
Even without this afiliation, Correspondences has been making good progress in our efforts to establish a publication that can deliver important new
research and widely distribute it via an open access (OA) publishing model.
We recently dug around in the belly of the intrawebs and gathered statistics on
the journal’s performance since it’s founding in 2012. Despite our publication’s
relative youth, our readership and citation statistics (as measured by Google
Scholar) suggest that with a few more years of longevity we’ll have similar
citation rates to established print publications of a similar size and research
scope. We believe that in addition to the quality of the work Correspondences
has been fortunate to publish, this impact can be explained by the widespread
distribution enabled by the OA model.
Our most signiicant step forward this year, however, was the appointment
of Dr. Allan Johnson of the University of Surrey to our editorial team. Allan
specializes in esoteric currents in modernist British literature. He is a Fellow
of the Royal Society of Arts and former Marjorie G. Wynne Fellow of British
© 2016 Aren Roukema
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
2
Roukema / Correspondences 4 (2016) 1–2
Literature at Yale University. In addition to his work with Correspondences, Allan
is taking exciting new approaches to the study of esotericism as director of the
Magic, Language, and Society Network, funded by the UK’s Arts and Humanities Research Council, in partnership with Treadwell’s Bookstore in London.
Allan has already improved the journal’s digital infrastructure, switching the
journal’s management and publishing software to Open Journal Systems (OJS),
and will be taking on other editorial roles in the future.
2016 also brought us the articles and reviews enfolded in this volume.
As usual, these essays and analyses of recently published material relect the
enormous diversity of esoteric studies. Egil Asprem looks at the roots of the
esoteric imagination in medieval kataphatic spirituality; Julian Strube places
Eliphas Lévi’s symbol of the Baphomet in the context of his political, religious
and scientiic views, and Boaz Huss provides a history of Zohar translations
that will prove invaluable to researchers of the history of kabbalah. Reviews
by Amy Hale, Keith Cantú, Peter Olsson, Dylan Burns, Christopher Plaisance
and Cimminnee Holt round out an issue that, in its diversity, should appeal to
all. We hope you enjoy it.
Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
ISSN: 2053-7158 (Online)
correspondencesjournal.com
Esotericism and the Scholastic Imagination:
The Origins of Esoteric Practice in Christian
Kataphatic Spirituality*
Egil Asprem
E-mail: egil.asprem@rel.su.se
Abstract
Scholars agree that the imagination is central to esoteric practice. While the esoteric vis
imaginativa is usually attributed to the inlux of Neoplatonism in the Italian Renaissance, this
article argues that many of its key properties were already in place in medieval scholasticism.
Two aspects of the history of the imagination are discussed. First, it is argued that esoteric
practice is rooted in a broader kataphatic trend within Christian spirituality that explodes in the
popular devotion literature of the later Middle Ages. By looking at the role of Bonaventure’s
“cognitive theology” in the popularization of gospel meditations and kataphatic devotional
prayer, it is argued that there is a direct link between the scholastic reconsideration of the
imaginative faculty and the development of esoteric practices inspired by Christian devotional
literature. Secondly, it is argued that the Aristotelian inner sense tradition of the scholastics left
a lasting impression on later esoteric conceptualizations of the imaginative faculty. Examples
suggesting evidence for both these two claims are discussed. The article proposes to view
esoteric practices as an integral part of a broader kataphatic stream in European religious
history, separated out by a set of disjunctive strategies rooted in the policing of “orthopraxy”
by ecclesiastical authorities.
Keywords
Imagination; kataphatic practice; scholasticism; the inner senses; illumination; heteropraxy
*
I wish to thank two anonymous peer reviewers for their immensely helpful comments and
corrections, which have improved the quality of this article. For all remaining blunders and
confusions in the text: mea culpa.
© 2016 Egil Asprem
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
4
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
1. Introduction: Contextualizing Esoteric Practice
Recent scholarship in the ield of esotericism has sought to demonstrate that
the currents we now class as “esoteric” have, historically, been integral parts of
the religious, philosophical, and scientiic cultures of Europe.1 This revisionist
work has primarily focused on ideas and doctrinal systems, sometimes in
combination with the institutional afiliations and social standing that “learned
men” writing on esoteric topics enjoyed in their own lifetimes.2 What has
generally been lacking is a focus on practice.3 In this article I aim to show how
esoteric practices can shed additional light on how esotericism has come to be
differentiated from categories such as “religion” or “Christianity”. My main
focus shall, however, be on the underlying continuities between esoteric and
mainstream practices that tend to get hidden from view by these disjunctions.
1
See especially Wouter J. Hanegraaff, “Beyond the Yates Paradigm: The Study of Western
Esotericism between Counterculture and New Complexity,” Aries 1, no. 1 (2001): 5–37; Monika
Neugebauer-Wölk, “Esoterik und Christentum vor 1800: Prolegomena zu einer Bestimmung
ihrer Differenz,“ Aries 3, no. 2 (2003): 127–65; Kocku von Stuckrad, “Western Esotericism:
Towards an Integrative Model of Interpretation,” Religion 34 (2005): 78–97; von Stuckrad,
Locations of Knowledge in Medieval and Early Modern Europe: Esoteric Discourse and Western Identities
(Leiden and Boston: Brill, 2010).
2
In addition to the programmatic works mentioned in footnote 1, numerous empirical and
theoretical studies of this kind focusing on esotericism and the Enlightenment are found in the
two volumes Neugebauer-Wölk, with Andre Rudolph (eds.), Aufklärung und Esoterik: Rezeption
– Integration – Konfrontation (Tübingen: Max Niemeyer Verlag, 2008); Neugebauer-Wölk, Renko
Geffarth, and Markus Meumann (eds.), Aufklärung und Esoterik: Wege in die Moderne (Berlin and
Boston: Walter De Gruyter, 2013). See also Hanegraaff, Esotericism and the Academy: Rejected
Knowledge in Western Culture (Oxford and New York: Oxford University Press, 2012); von
Stuckrad, The Scientiication of Religion: An Historical Study of Discursive Change, 1800–2000 (Berlin
and Boston: Walter De Gruyter, 2014); Egil Asprem, The Problem of Disenchantment: Scientiic
Naturalism and Esoteric Discourse, 1900–1939 (Leiden and Boston: Brill, 2014).
3
This appears to be an overall hiatus in esotericism scholarship, especially in work focusing
on the early modern period. Exceptions are mainly found in some of the studies of modern
initiatory and magical groups, notably Tanya M. Luhrmann, Persuasions of the Witch’s Craft:
Ritual Magic in Contemporary England (Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 1989); Henrik
Bogdan, Western Esotericism and Rituals of Initiation (Albany: State University of New York Press,
2007); Kennet Granholm, Dark Enlightenment: The Historical, Sociological, and Discursive Contexts
of Contemporary Esoteric Magic (Leiden: Brill, 2014). On the neglect of practice, see also Amy
Hale, “Navigating Praxis: Pagan Studies vs. Esoteric Studies,” The Pomegranate 15, no. 1–2
(2013): 151–63. The prominent inclusion of “practice” in Hanegraaff ’s recent introduction to
the ield is a promising sign that this neglect is about to be remedied. See Hanegraaff, Western
Esotericism: A Guide for the Perplexed (London and New York: Bloomsbury Publishing, 2013),
102–18.
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
5
In the course of the article I will develop and defend two hypotheses: (1) that an
important context for esoteric practices is found in the popular affective piety
movement of the later Middle Ages, grounded in theological developments
that emphasized the power of the imagination; and (2) that the fusion of an
Aristotelian psychological tradition with a Neoplatonic epistemology which
played out in high scholasticism preigures the understanding of “imagination”
and associated practices in later esoteric sources. While sections 2 to 4 below
establish the necessary historical and conceptual background, I will assess both
hypotheses in detail in section 5.
I deine “practice” broadly, as any activity that is performed regularly and
in a patterned way.4 “Esoteric” practices – by which I simply mean “practices
that have later been labelled ‘esoteric’”5 – are typically concerned with a search
for higher knowledge, or gnosis, and in so doing they tend to emphasize the
use of the imagination. Based on this commonplace observation, I argue
that esoteric practices typically make use of kataphatic, or imagery-based
techniques, as opposed to apophatic techniques, which repress imagery. While
the connection between esotericism and imagination is old hat,6 esotericism
scholars have typically invoked imagination in order to set “esotericism” aside
as something distinctive and different from other, presumably “unimaginative”
cultural trends. For example, Faivre’s inluential model presents the esoteric
“form of thought” as the “radical counterpart of Enlightenment ideology” –
where “imagination/mediation” stands in contrast to “monism/materialism”.7
My understanding of practice is in the tradition of Bourdieu, but drawing more speciically
on the notion of “patterned practices” developed from that foundation in Anders Roepstorff,
J. Niewöhner, and S. Beck, “Enculturing brains through patterned practices,” Neural Networks,
23, no. 8–9 (2010). Cf. Pierre Bourdieu, Outline of a Theory of Practice, trans. Richard Nice
(Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1977).
5
To avoid unnecessarily encumbering the language, and at the peril of obscuring the
thoroughly constructionist assumptions that are implied throughout, I nevertheless take the
liberty to use “esoteric practices” as a short-hand phrase.
6
E.g., as perhaps the most central characteristic in Antoine Faivre’s seminal deinition of
esotericism as a “form of thought.” See Faivre, Access to Western Esotericism (Albany: State University of New York Press, 1994), 12-13; see also Faivre, “Vis imaginativa: A Study of Some
Aspects of the Imagination and Its Mythical Foundations,” in Theosophy, Imagination, Tradition:
Studies in Western Esotericism, trans. Christine Rhone (Albany: State University of New York
Press, 2002). Cf. the substantial entry on the subject by Marieke van den Doel and Wouter J.
Hanegraaff, “Imagination,” Dictionary of Gnosis & Western Esotericism, ed. Hanegraaff et al.
(Leiden and Boston: Brill, 2005).
7
As recently pointed out by Wouter J. Hanegraaff, “The Globalization of Esotericism,”
Correspondences 3 (2015): 80.
4
6
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
Rather than assuming this dichotomy, my argument is quite the opposite.
The “esoteric” use of imagery-based techniques is part of a much broader
orientation toward kataphatic spirituality, and individual practices should
therefore be viewed as leaves on a major branch of European intellectual and
religious history. In particular, I will argue that esotericism is aligned with a key
trend in late-medieval theories of cognition, and with the devotional practices
that it inspired among monastic orders and the laity alike.8
Connecting esoteric kataphatic practice with the conceptual history of
the imagination also leads to other insights that break somewhat with the
standard narrative. While the received view is that esotericism’s emphasis on
the imagination is linked with the Neoplatonism and Hermeticism of the
Renaissance humanists, the story that I will tell is one in which esotericism
owes a great deal more to medieval high scholasticism. This, I shall argue,
has three discernible consequences for the way we characterize the history of
esotericism: it switches our focus of interest from Platonism to Aristotelianism;
it extends the historical scope backwards to the Middle Ages, and especially
to monasticism, scholasticism, and the emergence of popular piety based on
scholastic theories of the imagination; and it emphasizes the need to consider
the Islamicate contexts of core ideas.
2. The Kataphatic–Apophatic Distinction: Its Relation to “Esoteric
Practice” and the Attainment of “Gnosis”
The distinction between kataphatic (kataphasis, “afirmation”) and apophatic
(from apophēmi, “to deny”) has a long history in Christian theology. Most often
it is used to distinguish the two opposing theological strategies of via negativa
(apophatic) and via positiva (kataphatic). In this sense, the distinction can at least
8
For medieval cognitive theories see especially Robert Pasnau, Theories of Cognition in the
Later Middle Ages (Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press, 1997). Pasnau,
however, admits to a selective reading that focuses only on what he (a philosopher) considers
“the most impressive and coherent statement” of the period’s cognitive theories, along with
“the most interesting and innovative challenge to that theory” (Pasnau, Theories of Cognition,
vii), and as a result he does not have much to say about the place of the imaginative faculty. On
that topic, see Deborah Black, “Imagination and Estimation: Arabic Paradigms and Western
Transformations,” Topoi 19, no. 1 (2000): 59–75. On the impact of these novel theories
of imagination on contemplative and devotional practice, see especially Michelle Karnes,
Imagination, Meditation, and Cognition in the Middle Ages (Chicago and London: Chicago University
Press, 2011).
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
7
be traced back to Pseudo-Dionysius (largely following Proclus).9 However, the
pair has also had a systematic application in the study of “mysticism”, where
they refer to two separate experiential approaches that, to some extent, mirror
the theological distinction.10 “Apophatic” mysticism refers to a comprehension
without words, beyond sensation and imagery, logic and reason – usually connected to claims of “transcendent” and “ineffable” knowledge. By contrast,
the kataphatic mystic attains positive, graspable visions of the divine; seeing
the face of God, walking in heavenly palaces, or receiving divine knowledge
from conversations with the angels or the saints are examples of kataphatic
experience in this sense.
Both the theological and the mystical understanding of these terms tend
to focus on religious elites and virtuosi, but this bias is not inherent in or
necessitated by the concepts themselves. More recently, the kataphatic/
apophatic distinction has been generalized in order to pick out a basic
difference in contemplative techniques, whether in meditation, prayer, or
devotion.11 As such, the two terms cover distinct types of practice that imply
differences in how people apply their minds and bodies. Kataphatic practice
works actively with mental and physical imagery, words, music, and emotion,
engaging the sensorium in order to inspire a touch of divinity. Apophatic
practice, in contrast, turns away from the senses and the outside world, seeking
to empty the mind of content and obliterate the self in pursuit of a divinity
beyond attributes. Rendered in these general terms, the kataphatic-apophatic
distinction can serve as a tertium comparationis for religious practices the world
over.12 We ind both types exempliied among mainstream and establishment
institutions in the Christian west, although there is a clear preference for
the kataphatic type. Monastic hesychasm, medieval “quietism”, and the
contemporary “Centering Prayer” movement13 are examples of Christian
9
See Andrew Louth, “Apophatic and Kataphatic Theology,” in The Cambridge Companion to
Christian Mysticism, edited by Amy Hollywood and Patricia z. Beckman (Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press, 2012), 140.
10
E.g. Egan, “Christian Apophatic and Kataphatic Mysticisms.”
11
See e.g. Tanya M. Luhrmann and Rachel Morgain, “Prayer as Inner Sense Cultivation:
An Attentional Learning Theory of Spiritual Experience,” Ethos 40, no. 4 (2012); Luhrmann,
Howard Nusbaum, and Ronald Thisted, ‘“Lord, Teach Us to Pray”: Prayer Practice Affects
Cognitive Processing,’ Journal of Cognition and Culture 13 (2013).
12
In a separate paper, I develop a theoretical framework for kataphatic practice that grounds
it thoroughly in biological and cognitive processes that are shared across the species. See Egil
Asprem, “Explaining the Esoteric Imagination: Towards a Theory of Kataphatic Practice,”
Aries 17, no. 1 (forthcoming).
13
The Centering Prayer movement was started by a group of American Cistercians in the
8
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
practices tending in the apophatic direction, while gospel meditations, the
Spiritual Exercises of Ignatius Loyola, and contemporary Charismatic prayer
practices are examples of the kataphatic trend.14 It is notable that church
authorities, especially the Roman Catholic, have tended to view the apophatic
type as more problematic than the kataphatic one, as illustrated for example
by the condemnation of Miguel de Molinos’s quietism as a heresy in 1687.15
This picture is, of course, complicated by the splintering and pluralization of
religious authority that followed from the Reformation – with some Protestant
new religious movements, like the Quakers, even building their orthopraxy on
broadly apophatic foundations. With this in mind, the kataphatic-apophatic
distinction can even be viewed as a practical and experiential aspect of the
wider problem of mediation that has structured so much of the Catholic/
Protestant polemic. In fact, we might hypothesize that while apophatic practice
has been problematic from the perspective of Catholic authorities, kataphatic
practices tend to become more problematic among Protestant ones.
However this may be, my present claim is that key practices that we now
associate with Western esotericism have historically been related to the kataphatic
trend that has been dominant in Catholic spirituality especially. Practices such
as the medieval ars notoria and related operations focused on conversation
with angels and attainment of divine knowledge,16 the Renaissance animation
of statues,17 the “enthusiasm” of Christian theosophy,18 or the “clairvoyant”
reading of the “Akashic records” in modern occultism19 all stand in continuum
with mainstream Christian practices focused on developing the “inner senses”.20
1970s, prompted by the massive interest in, and increasing supply of, Buddhist contemplative
traditions. It has since spread rapidly in Christian communities across denominations. For an
insider account, see Pennington, Centering Prayer.
14
See Luhrmann, When God Talks Back.
15
See Innocent XI, “Condemning the Errors of Miguel de Molinos [Coelestis Pastor],”
issued November 20, 1687, Papal Encyclicas Online, url: http://www.papalencyclicals.net/
Innoc11/i11coel.htm (accessed April 17, 2016).
16
See e.g. Claire Fanger (ed.), Invoking Angels: Theurgic Ideas and Practices, Thirteenth to Sixteenth
Centuries (University Park: Pennsylvania State University Press, 2012).
17
See Hanegraaff, “Sympathy or the Devil: Renaissance Magic and the Ambivalence of
Idols,” Esoterica 2 (2000).
18
See e.g. Faivre, Theosophy, Imagination, Tradition: Studies in Western Esotericism, trans. Christine
Rhone (Albany: State University of New York Press, 2000); Arthur Versluis, Wisdom’s Children:
A Christian Esoteric Tradition (Albany: State University of New York Press, 1999).
19
Olav Hammer, Claiming Knowledge: Strategies of Epistemology from Theosophy to the New Age
(Leiden and Boston: Brill, 2001), 415–53.
20
See discussions of the Christian preoccupation with “sensing” and “perceiving” the divine
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
9
From theurgy to past-life regression, accessing higher knowledge through
internal mental imagery is everywhere in esoteric experiential practices.21
The claim that the imagination is central to esotericism is certainly not new;
most scholarly deinitions recognize it.22 Antoine Faivre has even suggested that
the use of imagination is what demarcates “esotericism” from “mysticism”:
we could say that the mystic – in the strictly classical sense – aspires to the more
or less complete suppression of images and intermediaries because for him they
become obstacles to the union with God. While the esoterist appears to take more
interest in the intermediaries revealed to his inner eye through the power of his
creative imagination than to extend himself essentially toward the union with the
divine. He prefers to sojourn on Jacob’s ladder where angels (and doubtless other
entities as well) climb up and down, rather than to climb to the top and beyond.23
I suggest that Faivre’s important distinction between an orientation towards
imagery and intermediaries on the one hand, and radical transcendence on the
other, is more appropriately expressed by the kataphatic–apophatic distinction.24 This allows us to say that the currents we tend to class as esoteric display
an orientation towards the kataphatic stream, while not denying that apophatic
elements are also found.
The more nuanced picture of kataphatic and apophatic tendencies is
handy when we consider the problem of “gnosis”. Virtually all scholars
of esotericism emphasize that practices focus on the attainment of some
special knowledge, and “gnosis” is the most common short-hand for this
core aspect.25 However, it is not always clear how the notion of gnosis maps
on to the kataphatic, imagination-based character of esoteric practice. The
compiled in the recent volume by Paul L. Gavrilyuk and Sarah Coakley (eds.), The Spiritual
Senses: Perceiving God in Western Christianity (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2011).
21
For practices of the imagination as a longue durée of Western ritual magic, see Christopher
A. Plaisance, “Magic Made Modern? Re-evaluating the Novelty of the Golden Dawn’s Magic,”
Correspondences 2, no. 2 (2014): 165–74.
22
Most notably in Faivre’s inluential deinition, and in deinitions relying on Henry Corbin’s
notion of mundus imaginalis; but we also ind it as an element in von Stuckrad’s discursive
deinition (in the guise of “mediation”). For the latter, see von Stuckrad, “Western Esotericism:
Towards an Integrative Model of Interpretation,” Religion 34 (2005).
23
Faivre, Access to Western Esotericism, 12.
24
For a critique of attempts to distinguish “mysticism” from “esotericism” in terms like
these, see von Stuckrad, “Mysticism, Gnosticism, and Esotericism as Entangled Discourses,”
313–15.
25
See Asprem, “Reverse-Engineering ‘Esotericism’: How to Prepare a Complex Cultural
Concept for the Cognitive Science of Religion,” Religion 46, no. 2 (2016): 168–74.
10
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
most inluential attempt to deine gnosis as a technical category does so in
apophatic terms. Hanegraaff uses the two dimensions of communicability and
veriiability (or: language and the senses) to differentiate “gnosis”, “reason”,
and “faith” as three separate approaches to knowledge. Set up in these terms,
gnosis comes out as characteristically apophatic: the claim is of an unmediated,
direct, ineffable knowledge of higher realities, which goes beyond sensation,
reason, and discursive language.26 By contrast, both “reason” and “faith”
refer to knowledge claims that have a positive, discursively communicable
and intelligible content – with “reason” additionally seeking to ground this
content in sense data and logical argument. Somewhat counterintuitively, then,
kataphatic practices appear closer to a “rational” than a “gnostic” or “faithbased” strategy: the idea is that the practitioner can follow certain speciied
techniques in order to evoke concrete and speciic imagery in the mind (or
even in the external perceptual ield). Moreover, such practices will usually
deploy a rigorous system of discernment in order to “test” the content and
determine that it is good.27 The road to esoteric knowledge through kataphatic
visions typically involves language, imagery, and a form of empirical testing –
albeit of “internal” rather than “external” sensations – through comparison
of what has been seen, heard, or felt with oficial criteria or examples of what
ought to be experienced under these circumstances.
Again, this is not to say that esoteric spokespersons never promise or report
moments of pure apophatic insight. However, when they are present, apophatic elements of the “gnostic” type (sensu Hanegraaff) are typically related to
the goal of attainment rather than the path of practice. I hold that we can view
“esoteric practices” as what Ann Taves calls “composite ascriptions”, where
special actions are tied to special goals (action → goal ).28 On this view, my
focus in the present article is on actions rather than goals: Even if the goal
26
E.g. Hanegraaff, “Reason, Faith, and Gnosis: Potentials and Problematics of a Typological
Construct,” in Peter Meusburger, Michael Welker, Edgar Wunder (eds.), Clashes of Knowledge:
Orthodoxies and Heterodoxies in Science and Religion (Klaus Tschira Stiftung / Springer, 2008), 133–44.
27
Thus, the key esoteric strategy has been characterized as a form of “extended” or “unbounded” reason. See the extensive discussion in Asprem, The Problem of Disenchantment, 431–41.
28
Taves, Religious Experience Reconsidered: A Building-Block Approach to Religion and Other Special
Things (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 2009), 46–48. Please note that this apparently
simple concept presupposes a whole context of attribution theory, which studies how people
attribute meanings, signiicance, agency, and causal power to things and events. Composite
ascriptions combine any number of simple ascriptions (things/events deemed signiicant) into
chains of goal-directed actions (practices). Thus, “special techniques” are used to achieve
“special goals.”
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
11
may in some cases be expressed in apophatic terms, we see a preference for
image-oriented techniques in order to achieve the goals.
We ind examples of this composite structure across the history of esoteric
practice. For example, in the theurgic context of Renaissance Neoplatonism
(Ficino) and Hermeticism (Lazzarelli), kataphatic, imagery-based techniques
precede the promised apophatic “revelatory event”.29 The same is true in
modern occultism, where both magically and theosophically oriented practices
emphasize development of imagery as the path of practice, while holding up
some ineffable experience of transcendent insight as the ultimate goal.30 Complicating the picture, however, there are also examples of apophatic practices
being mixed with the kataphatic ones. For example, Cornelius Agrippa spends
most of the third book of De occulta philosophia talking about ritual practices
that rely heavily on the support of sensory stimuli, symbolic mediation, and
sensory engagement with spirits, yet he also includes (in chapter 55) an entry
on the inal “ascent of the mind” to “pure intellect” via abstinence, fasting,
chastity, solitude, and tranquillity. Nevertheless, even in this case the practitioner would be expected to have already practiced kataphatic techniques
before setting out on the apophatic journey to pure intellect. What is more,
this progression would make perfect sense from the background of medieval
theories of the imagination and mental imagery.
3. The Imaginative Faculty: Scholastic Faculty Psychology and the
Aristotelian Renaissance
What we today call the imagination is one thing – how practitioners might
have conceived of mental imagery is quite another.31 Previous scholarship on
29
On this, see the rich and suggestive analysis in Hanegraaff, “Sympathy or the Devil.”
See for example the comparison of Rudolf Steiner’s “Dweller on the Threshold” experience and Aleister Crowley’s “Holy Guardian Angel” experience in Asprem, The Problem of
Disenchantment, 531–33.
31
To make matters even more complicated, there is no single and unambiguous deinition
of imagination in contemporary psychology or cognitive science. Here, I will assume that we
are talking about the phenomenon of mental imagery, which has a big body of research connected to it – including studies on the cultivation of mental imagery, individual differences
in reported imagery vividness, and various factors that inluence it. I address this literature
and its importance for understanding esoteric practices from a cognitive angle in Asprem,
“Explaining the Esoteric Imagination.” For the concept of mental imagery cultivation, see
Richard Noll, “Mental Imagery Cultivation as a Cultural Phenomenon: The Role of Visions
in Shamanism,” Current Anthropology 26, no. 4 (1985). For an overview of psychological and
neurocognitive research on mental imagery as a separate type of mental representations, see
30
12
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
esotericism and “the imagination” has typically not made it suficiently clear
whether “imagination” is a part of actors’ categories for explaining their own
actions and experiences (that is, employed as an emic term), or whether it is
used as a scholarly (etic) construct for the sake of analyzing the sources. In
other words, it often remains unclear whether these analyses are drawing on
contemporary theories of the imagination in order to shed light on historical phenomena, or whether they are engaged in excavating various historical
meanings, theories, and practices that the actors themselves have attributed to
“imagination”. One would be a form of cognitive historiography, the other a
genealogy of the imagination. Both approaches can be valuable, but they are
separate projects that must be distinguished carefully.
By and large, historians of esotericism appear to have started from contemporary understandings of the imagination, interpreting any practice that
shows evidence of mental imagery as an exercise of “imagination”. Although
it is usually not clear which psychological theory of imagination underpins
these analyses, the frequent reference to terms such as “creative” and “active
imagination” – terms associated with the heritage of Romanticism and even
more speciically with the psychological theories of Carl Gustav Jung – justiies
the suspicion that esotericism scholars are working from a vaguely Jungian
conception, forged in the countercultural fervour of the Eranos meetings and
imported into the study of esotericism by Faivre, via Henry Corbin.32 Essentially, it is the imagination of the romantics that is projected backwards in time:
a conception of free and creative mental imagery as a contrast with, and escape
from, the cold, rational, and scientiic intellect or reason.33
This, however, is a thoroughly modern contrast that is quite alien to key
esoteric sources. With the failure to make suficiently clear that the concept of
“imagination” is not so much “discovered” in the sources as derived from the
scholar’s own vocabulary, we may also have missed out on the emic cognitive
theories that underpinned these practices. This section is a modest attempt at
Stephen M. Kosslyn, William L. Thompson, and Giorgio Ganis, The Case for Mental Imagery
(Oxford and New York: Oxford University Press, 2006). A much more detailed account of
the relevant literature can be found in my separate paper cited above.
32
On the Eranos meetings, see especially Hans Thomas Hakl, Eranos: An Alternative Intellectual
History of the Twentieth Century (Shefield: Equinox, 2013); on the inluence of Eranos on an earlier
generation of the study of esotericism, see Hanegraaff, Esotericism and the Academy, 277–314.
33
For a great analysis of the romantic bias of Faivre’s notion in particular, see Hanegraaff,
“The Globalization of Esotericism,” 77–80. For a historical overview of the development
of the romantic imagination from Enlightenment forbears, see James Engell, The Creative
Imagination: Enlightenment to Romanticism (Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 1981).
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
13
mapping some of this neglected territory.
My claim is that intellectual developments of the later Middle Ages left a
permanent mark on esoteric conceptions of mental imagery.34 This period
saw an explosive interest in sophisticated theories of cognition, which would
eventually inluence devotional practice and piety on a broad scale.35 Over
the course of about a century (c. 1250 to 1350), scholastics like Albert the
Great, Thomas Aquinas, Bonaventure, Henry of Ghent, Peter John Olivi, and
William Ockham discussed the architecture of the human mind in great detail,
developing an elaborate discourse on the philosophy of mind and mental function. There were many facets to these debates, and scholars were divided on a
number of different grounds.36 However, one of the issues at stake concerned
the nature and function of mental imagery: where does it come from, how is
it related to the faculty of “imagination”, and how does that faculty relate to
the acquisition of knowledge (scientia) and understanding (sapientia)?
The early thirteenth century saw the importation from the Islamic world
of the Corpus Aristotelicum, which included a rich commentary tradition in
Arabic.37 This literature, and especially the commentaries of Avicenna and
Averroes, sparked a burst of scholarly creativity. For our purposes, the commentaries to De anima – itself previously unavailable in Latin – are of particular
interest.38 The Persian scholar Avicenna (980–1037), writing already in the
eleventh century, is the foremost authority, backing up his elaborations on De
anima and its Greek commentary tradition with a sophisticated knowledge of
the anatomy of the human brain, which matched that of Galen and would go
unrivalled until the days of Vesalius.39 Avicenna’s works, together with those
of Averroes (1126–1198), who had considerable differences with Avicenna that
Latin scholars did not always identify, laid the foundation of a complex view of
the faculties or “inner senses” that would resonate throughout medieval Europe.
34
Please note that I distinguish between “mental imagery” and “imagination.” This is
because, as we shall see, “mental imagery” is not always ascribed solely to imagination in
these sources, and imagination is not solely about the formation of mental imagery.
35
See especially Karnes, Imagination, Meditation, and Cognition in the Middle Ages.
36
A great overview with references to the major literature is available in Robert Pasnau,
Theories of Cognition in the Later Middle Ages (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1997).
37
See Deborah L. Black, “Imagination and Estimation: Arabic Paradigms and Western
Transformations,” Topoi 19, no. 1 (2000): 59–75.
38
For a close reading of the reception of De anima among Latin authors, see now Sander
de Boer, The Science of the Soul: The Commentary Tradition on Aristotle’s De Anima, c. 1260–1360
(Leuven: Leuven University Press, 2013).
39
Christopher D. Green, “Where Did the Ventricular Localization of Mental Faculties Come
From?” Journal of the History of the Behavioral Sciences 39, no. 2 (2003): 131–42.
14
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
3.1 A brief overview of the inner senses: Avicenna
The basic idea of cognition following Aristotle is one in which information
about the world imprints itself on the ive external senses, and passes from
there into a number of inner senses or faculties that are specialized in extracting further information from this stream.40 In De anima, the “common sense”
combines the separate sense modalities into one coherent picture. The medieval discussion of the inner senses emerged from attempts to elaborate on
Aristotle’s “common sense”, “memory”, and especially his murky comments
on “imagination”. Avicenna’s is a particularly inluential and lucid attempt to
do this, which set the stage for much of the later discussion both in the Muslim
and the Christian world. Avicenna operates with ive internal senses, to which
are added a “cogitative faculty” that is dependent on the divinely endowed
“intellect”.41 Below is a list of the faculties and their functions according to
Avicenna:42
Faculty
Common sense
Function
Receives sensible forms from the ive external
senses
Formative/retentive imagination Retains the forms in images
Estimative faculty
Receives/makes judgments about intentions
(of externally sensed objects)
Memorative faculty
Stores images and intentions
Compositive imagination
Composes and divides forms and intentions
Cogitative faculty
The compositive imagination under the voluntary control of the intellect – i.e., controlled
compositive imagining.
40
For a classic, although somewhat dated, treatment of the inner sense tradition following
Aristotle, see Harry Austryn Wolfson, “The Internal Senses in Latin, Arabic, and Hebrew Philosophical Texts,” The Harvard Theological Review 28, no. 2 (1935).
41
As Black explains, Avicenna appears to say that the compositive imagination can be controlled either by estimation or by reason, and that this gives rise to two separate “aspects.”
Thus, he is able to multiply the number of cognitive functions while restricting the number
of inner senses to ive. See Black, “Imagination and Estimation,” 60.
42
Avicenna’s psychological theory is developed in two different works, Al-Shifa (”Healing”)
and Al-Najah (”Deliverance”). The parts of these works that deal with psychology are available in English translation in Fazlur Rahman, Avicenna’s “De anima,” Being the Psychological Part of
Kirab al-Shifa (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1959), and idem, Avicenna’s Psychology (Oxford:
Oxford University Press, 1952).
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
15
What is notable here is that Avicenna operates with two distinct imaginative
faculties: the “formative/retentive” and the “compositive”. The formative/
retentive imagination accounts for our ability to retain a mental picture (image)
of the forms that are received from the external senses (and combined by the
sensus communis). These formal images are passed on to the “estimative” faculty,
which is a specialized sense for detecting the intentions that go together with
perceptible objects but are not themselves directly available to the external
senses. While Avicenna is ambiguous about what counts as an intention, the
examples he uses are typically about the affective states and motivations of
animals, such as when a sheep perceives “hostility” in a wolf.43 Both images
and intentions are stored in the memorative faculty. The compositive imagination, then, is the ability to perform operations on both images and intentions,
dividing them up into components, combining them with each other to form
novel ones, attaching and replacing intentions to images, and so forth. Finally,
this compositive form of imagination is crucial to the cogitative faculty, that is
to “thinking” or “cognition” in the strict sense. Cogitation happens when the
compositive imagination is set under the disciplined and voluntary control of
the intellect.44 This allows Avicenna to distinguish between disciplined thinking
(where reason uses imagination as a tool) and the random, purposeless associations of the compositive imagination characteristic of dreams.
At this point we must consider another important distinction that Avicenna
lifted from Aristotle and gave a platonizing interpretation: that between the
active and the passive (or receptive) intellect. Aristotle needed a distinction
of this kind because his metaphysics said that anything potential can only be
brought into actuality by something already actual. Thus, since human intellection is a matter of a capacity for acquiring knowledge (rather than the Platonic
view of “recollecting” forms already present in the mind), this potential capacity needs an actualizing agent.45 The active or agent intellect, then, is an exact
parallel to the prime mover in Aristotle’s cosmology.46
Aristotle’s somewhat sketchy treatment of this distinction has, however,
43
See Black, “Imagination and Estimation,” 60.
This separation between a passive and an active form of imagination appears to have been
preigured among some of the Neoplatonist interpreters of Aristotle that Avicenna also had
access to. See for example the discussion of Stephanus of Alexandria in Blumenthal, “Neoplatonic Interpretations of Aristotle on Phantasia,” The Review of Metaphysics 31, no. 2 (1977), 254–56.
45
While the distinction is made by Aristotle in De Anima 3.5, one should note that the terminology of active and passive intellect is introduced by his interpreters. On this see Karnes,
Imagination, Meditation, and Cognition in the Middle Ages, 42–43.
46
See e.g. Haldane, “Aquinas and the Active Intellect,” 203.
44
16
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
occasioned a diversity of interpretations. In apparent conlict with the general
lavour of his doctrine on the soul, it looks as if the active intellect is a unitary
and universal entity that is, moreover, separate from all the passive intellects
instantiated in each individual mind. This ambiguity was ripe for platonizing
interpretations – a feature that the Neoplatonist commentators on Aristotle
exploited fully.47 This commentary tradition inluenced Avicenna’s views as
well, and through him and Averroes it entered the Latin west, where it has
since proved rather contentious.
According to Avicenna, the active intellect is associated with Allah, separated
from the individual passive intellects. It contains all forms, and transmits
them to the receptive intellects, setting them in motion. These forms are
then “activated” when the senses provide the appropriate particulars for the
intellect to consider. Thus, when an image formed from external impressions
is comprehended, it is “actualized” in the potential intellect by virtue of the
illumination of the divine, active intellect.48 This brings us to an important point
about the power of the (compositive) imagination: In the epistemology of
Avicenna, the imagination is a powerful faculty that is central to understanding;
however, it only attains this power when it is subservient to the intellect that
emanates from the divine.
3.2 Entering the Latin world
As Deborah Black notes, “it is impossible to isolate any universal features
that are common to all medieval exponents of the philosophical doctrine of
internal senses”.49 Averroes, who would be viewed in the Latin world as the
greatest of the commentators on Aristotle, differed markedly from Avicenna,
replacing estimation with cogitation and collapsing the two distinct senses of
imagination into one.50 Among the scholastics, Albert the Great reinserted
estimation and kept the distinction between a lower retentive imagination
(imaginatio) and a higher compositive one (phantasia), while Thomas Aquinas
followed Averroes in allowing a single imaginative faculty and held that animals
have mere estimation where humans have cogitation.51 In addition, there are
47
See e.g. Blumenthal, “Neoplatonic Interpretations of Aristotle on Phantasia.”
Avicenna explicitly uses the analogy of light with the active intellect, a metaphor that was
widespread among platonizing readings of Aristotle. See e.g. Frederic M. Schroeder, “Light
and the Active Intellect in Alexander and Plotinus,” Hermes 112, no. 2 (1984): 239–48.
49
Black, “Imagination and Estimation,” 68.
50
Ibid., 62-63. For other Latin commentaries, see de Boer, The Science of the Soul (Leuven:
Leuven University Press, 2013).
51
Black, “Imagination and Estimation,” 63–68.
48
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
17
differences in the views and functions of memory, not to mention a huge and
theologically charged dispute about the nature of the active intellect.52 Aquinas
departed from Avicenna in viewing the active intellect as “a power of deriving intelligible forms from experience as presented by phantasms”.53 It is not a
universal storehouse of forms, separate from each individual intellect, but the
power that lets us extract the general from the particular – or, more technically,
the “intelligible species” from the sensed object.
The question of how to understand the active intellect, and how it should
be related to imagination, is crucial to our present task because it concerns
the epistemic status of mental imagery. In general, the scholastics see the
function of intellect as that which is able to extract the “intelligible species”
of the images (or “phantasms”) provided by the imagination from the senses
and bring it into understanding in the potential intellect.54 In other words,
the scholastics replace the more straight-forwardly Platonic interpretation of
Avicenna, in which the species (or forms) are supplied by the active intellect, with
a hylomorphic view where the forms (or species) are out there in the concrete
objects and are “discovered” by the inner senses under the guidance of the
intellect (compare ig. 1 and ig. 2). Thus, the scholastics avoid the Platonic
problem of why individuals do not always understand all things, but are left
to cope with the problem of explaining how the mind comes to uncover
the forms hidden in the world through a series of mental operations that
culminate with understanding in the potential intellect.
This difference in orientation has wide ramiications for the power of the
imagination and the other inner senses, for it means that they are already involved with uncovering forms originally put in nature by God, rather than
merely receiving signals about matter that the intellect then orders by supplying
divine forms. This change starts with Albert, who draws on Averroes, and continues in his student Aquinas, whose De unitate intellectus contra Averroistas (1270)
showed full awareness of the potentially heretical implications of postulating
a separate agent intellect shared by all humans. In the faculty psychology that
52
See e.g. Haldane, “Aquinas and the Active Intellect,” 205-210; cf. Pasnau, Theories of Cognition in the Later Middle Ages, 12-13. The dispute about the agent intellect was in fact so theologically sensitive that it inspired several condemnations and prohibitions against being discussed.
See e.g. John Wippel, “The Condemnations of 1270 and 1277 at Paris,” Journal of Medieval and
Renaissance Studies 7, no. 2 (1977).
53
Haldane, “Aquinas and the Active Intellect,” 205.
54
There is a huge literature on the scholastic species theory. For an overview, see the twovolume study of Leen Spruit, Species Intelligibilis: From Perception to Knowledge (Leiden and New
York: Brill, 1994 [vol. 1], 1995 [vol. 2]).
18
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
Active
Intellect
Vision
Intelligible
species
Hearing
Common
sense
Touch
Inner senses
Potential
Intellect
Phantasm
Smell
Taste
Fig. 1: “Platonized” mental faculties (Avicenna): Intelligible species are stored in the separate
active intellect (“up there”), which illuminates the potential intellect. Understanding occurs
when phantasms are supplied from the outside world and the internal senses that “match”
the forms supplied by the active intellect.
Vision
Hearing
Touch
Smell
Active
Intellect
Extraction of
intelligible species
species
species
species
Common
sense
Inner senses
Phantasm with
species
species
Potential
Intellect
species
Taste
Fig. 2: Aristotelian-scholastic mental faculties (Albert, Aquinas): Intelligible species are in the
things themselves (“out there”), and through a system of mediations they make imprints on
the mind. The imagination creates “phantasms” that represent the species in the shape of
images. The active intellect has the power to extract true species from the image and ilter
them into the potential intellect, which results in knowledge.
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
19
emerges from Aquinas, imagination plays a crucial function in understanding both
universals and particulars as it provides the intellect with information of both,
which the intellect can then use as a tool for generating understanding about physical objects in the outside world – as opposed to knowledge about universal ideas
only.55 Imagination, as the intellect’s tool, brings out the spiritual in the material.
4. From Theory to Practice: Kataphatic Spirituality and Popular
Devotion
The psychological theories of mental faculties were primarily developed from
the scientiic and epistemological concern with iguring out how the mind is
constituted and how it lets us gain knowledge of the world around us. As we
have seen, these endeavours were not separated from theology. But what is
more, theoretical knowledge of the mind’s faculties would also inspire new
contemplative techniques. Another scholastic doctor is crucial in this development: The Franciscan Giovanni di Fidanza (1221–74), better known as the
“Seraphic Doctor”, Bonaventure.
Before turning to Bonaventure’s signiicant contribution, however, we
should recognize a few other important precursors for imagery-related
practices that stand outside of the philosophical, Aristotelian–Platonic stream
that we have been considering here. One particularly important vehicle of
kataphatic spiritual practice is the monastic tradition, especially as it connects
to the transformation of the art of memory in the early Middle Ages.56 Less
theoretically informed but all the more practically oriented, this tradition rested
on the classical rhetorical instructions for creating “locations” and “images”
in the mind in order to structure memory.57 However, as Mary Carruthers has
shown, the monastics went much beyond the classics. The monastic art of
memory was primarily focused on crafting thoughts about God (i.e., prayers),
and it was rooted in the (Platonic) injunction of the Egyptian hesychasts:
mneme theou – remember God. 58 The notion of memory, intimately related
55
See Karnes, Imagination, Meditation, and Cognition in the Middle Ages, 56–61.
On this, see the indispensable works by Mary Carruthers, The Craft of Thought: Meditation,
Rhetoric, and the Making of Images, 400–1200 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1998); cf.
Carruthers, The Book of Memory: A Study of Memory in Medieval Culture, 2nd edition (Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 2008); Carruthers and Jan M. ziolkowski (eds.), The Medieval Craft of
Memory: An Anthology of Texts and Pictures (Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2002).
57
See Frances Yates, The Art of Memory (London: Routledge and Kegan Paul, 1966); but cf.
the more up to date discussion in Carruthers, The Book of Memory.
58
Ibid., 2.
56
20
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
with imagination, was such that it provided a channel to the divine. However,
that channel had to be built actively by practitioners: the art of memory was
a craft, and practitioners needed to build their own tools (e.g., written and
illuminated memory devices, visualized prayers) and hone their skills through
practice. Moreover, it was not just the goals and philosophical presuppositions
that distinguished the monastic art of memory from its classical precursors:
its techniques were also imported from elsewhere. Carruthers has shown that
there is a signiicant inluence not only from hesychasm, but also from Jewish
traditions of hekhalot and merkabah mysticism. Reproducing visions of
angels and heavenly palaces are typical exercises in monastic art of memory
texts, where the feathers on a seraph’s wing or the dimensions of Noah’s ark
become the “loci” that practitioners use to compose and memorize prayers.59
Another stream that must be mentioned before we continue is the
persistence of Neoplatonic ideas through the church fathers, especially
Augustine. Augustine followed the common Platonic-Aristotelian fashion
of seeing the imagination as an essential, but rather untrustworthy, mental
faculty.60 Although the imaginative faculty is important to the formation
of memories and plays a role in cognition, it mixes sense data with beliefs
in ways that lead to images of things that are not actually there, such as in
dreams.61 However, it would be a mistake to conlate the untrustworthiness
of the imaginative faculty with a suspicion of all mental imagery: Augustine
clearly held that “phantasms” produced by the imagination are not the only
kind of mental image – true images come from the realm of timeless forms,
which for him (again following middle-Platonist orthodoxy) was the mind of
God. Thus, in his Trinitarian doctrine, Augustine conceives of God the Father
as the storehouse of all forms, whereas the Son (or the Word) is the expression
of forms.62 The process of “illumination” by which divine light shines on the
mind in order for it to gain knowledge thus mirrors the incarnation itself: Christ
makes timeless truths knowable in actual human minds. All of this, however,
had to do with the intellect rather than the imagination. This Augustinian idea
remains visible in the common distinction between “corporeal”, “imaginative”,
59
See examples in Carruthers, The Craft of Thought, 2, 60–115.
On the negative attitude that Neoplatonists displayed toward the imagination as a faculty,
despite their great interest in mental imagery, see e.g. Gerald Watson, Phantasia in Classical
Thought (Galway: Galway University Press, 1988); cf. Karnes, Imagination, Mediation, and Cognition
in the Middle Ages, 25–31.
61
On Augustine’s view on the imaginative faculty, see Todd Breyfogle, “Memory and
Imagination in Augustine’s Confessions,” New Blackfriars 75 (1994): 210–23.
62
Karnes, Imagination, Meditation, and Cognition in the Middle Ages, 66–7.
60
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
21
and “intellectual visions” in Catholic doctrine, where the intellectual type is
held as the highest form of mystical comprehension.63
4.1 Bonaventure’s Cognitive Theology
A touch of illuminationism did, as we have seen, survive in the Aristotelian
lineage that inspired thirteenth century scholasticism. The tendency of people
like Albert and Aquinas was, however, to diminish rather than emphasize it.
Bonaventure, a contemporary of Aquinas, went in the opposite direction:
Deeply steeped in Augustinian thought, he infused the basic Aristotelian view
of human cognition with a heavy dose of illuminationist epistemology. The
result was a cognitive theology in which the operations of the mental faculties mirror the dynamics of God’s own mind, and divine illumination takes
an active and intimate role in every cognitive act. This synthesis attributed
powers to the faculty of imagination that it had never previously seen in the
Aristotelian or the Platonic traditions. Moreover, Bonaventure’s project did
not merely seek to lay bare the workings of the mind: It developed into a
contemplative practice that promised a route to God through operations on
the mind’s faculties.
The Seraphic Doctor’s cognitive theology is most fully developed in his
Itinerarium mentis in Deum (“The journey of the mind to God”).64 Following
Augustine in the inal part of De Trinitate, Bonaventure saw the faculties of
the human mind as a mirror of the Trinity.65 But armed with the Aristotelian
inner sense tradition, Bonaventure gives a central role to the imagination as the
faculty that mediates between fallible sense impressions and true apprehension
by the agent intellect. Blending Aquinas’ view of the faculties with Augustine’s
illuminationism, imagination, for Bonaventure, becomes intimately connected
with the incarnation of Christ. Through the incarnation, Christ was himself
the perfect mediator between the material and the spiritual – simultaneously
man and God in one image. The imagination’s role in cognition, according to
Bonaventure, is thus a perfect analogue to the incarnation. Its images are built
up from the material world of the senses, but in the act of comprehension,
the divine illumination of the agent intellect reveals the intelligible species
63
For a brief overview, see Lucien Roure, “Visions and Apparitions,” in The Catholic
Encyclopedia, Vol. 15 (New York: Robert Appleton Company, 1912), <http://www.newadvent.
org/cathen/15477a.htm> (accessed 18 April, 2016).
64
For a trustworthy modern edition, see Bonaventure, The Journey of the Mind to God, ed.
Stephen F. Brown, trans. Philotheus Boehner (Indianapolis: Hackett Publishing Company, 1993.
65
For Augustine’s analogy of the Trinity and human cognition, see especially De Trinitate,
book XV. The interpretation of Bonaventure that follows is borrowed from Michelle Karnes.
22
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
(of divine origin) in the image. Taking a long step in a platonizing direction,
Bonaventure replaces the agent intellect with Christ, and sees in the act of
understanding a perfect analogy with Christ’s descent into lesh. Through
his incarnation, Christ is the super-image that guarantees safe passage from
matter to spirit (or from sensation to knowledge). Thus, Christ intervenes directly every time one extracts species from phantasms – in a sense incarnating
in the faculty of the imagination.66
The Itinerarium is both a philosophical and a contemplative work. The
practical upshot of the cognitive theory is that contemplation on the mind’s
own processes – how we move from sense impressions to mental images, and
how we come to true understanding through “illumination” – constitutes a
way to knowledge of God, and, more speciically, of the Trinity.67 Bonaventure
uses the vision of the seraph’s six wings as an image to develop six stages in
a contemplative exercise that starts with the contemplation of physical things
and the presence of God in the natural world, proceeds via the traces or
“vestiges” of God in the inner senses, and ends with ascent through the light
of illumination to the “Eternal Truth” of the divine.68 Here is Bonaventure
relecting on the intended result, when the mind has ascended to a pure
intellectual vision of God:
Our mind has contemplated God outside itself through and in the vestiges; within
itself through and in the image; and above itself through the similitude of the
divine light shining on us from above in as far as that is possible in our pilgrim
state and by the exercise of our mind. Now inally when the mind has come to the
sixth step, in the irst and highest Principle and in the mediator between God and
humanity, Jesus Christ, it inds mysteries which have no likeness among creatures
and which surpass the penetrating power of the human intellect. When we have
contemplated all these things, it remains for the mind to pass over and transcend
not only the sensible world but the soul itself. And in this passage, Christ is the
way and the door. Christ is the ladder and the vehicle, like the Mercy Seat placed
above the ark of God and the mystery that has been hidden from all eternity.69
Besides this lofty (apophatic) mysticism, Bonaventure’s cognitive theology also
informed a much broader programme of kataphatic spiritual devotion. Karnes
66
Karnes, Imagination, Meditation, and Cognition in the Middle Ages, 89–92.
The complicated and rather murky details of the Trinity’s role in the mystical practice that
Bonaventure prescribes is discussed by Karnes, Imagination, Meditation, and Cognition in the Middle
Ages, 99–109.
68
Ibid., 85.
69
Bonaventure, The Journey of the Mind to God, chapter 7, 1.
67
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
23
shows how Bonaventure’s popular and vastly inluential gospel meditations
– namely the Lignum vitae (1260), the Vitis mystica (c. 1263), and De perfectione
vitae ad sorores (1259–60) – tend to follow the same path recommended in the
Itinerarium, from senses to mental images to illumination and knowledge of
higher things. The intimate connection between the imagination and Christ
makes gospel meditations a supremely powerful contemplative tool. For what
if the practitioner uses the imagination – which is already analogous with the
incarnation – to form images of Christ? Following Bonaventure’s logic, this
procedure provides intimate, irst-hand access to the mystery of incarnation
itself, because the phantasm of Christ created by the imagination interacts with
the actual Christ in the form of the illumination of the agent intellect. Thus,
gospel meditations are not only about the mystery of Christ’s materiality and
divinity, in the sense of being directed at a representation of it, but actually
recreate that mystery and provide direct access to it.
While Bonaventure’s cognitive-theological rationale for this practice was
innovative, the kataphatic practices that he advocated would become anything
but marginal. His gospel meditations contributed to what was becoming a
major trend, transforming Christian religious practice in the late-medieval
period: the rapid spread of practices aimed at personal piety through prayer
and the contemplation of images. If we are to judge by the sheer number of
surviving manuscripts, devotional literature such as the pseudo-Bonaventurean
Meditationes vitae Christi (early-fourteenth century) and the Stimulus amoris
(James of Milan, original late-thirteenth century, but vastly expanded upon in
manuscript copies for centuries) were among the most popular spiritual texts
of the later Middle Ages. In various versions and stages of completion the
latter work alone exists in as many as 374 known manuscripts.70 Indeed, the
decisively most successful class of manuscript from the Middle Ages, having
survived in tens of thousands of copies, is the book of hours genre – works
that allowed the laity to emulate the strict prayer regimes of monastic practice.
5. Discussion: Two hypotheses about the inluence of Christian
kataphatic spirituality on esoteric practices
I will now return to the main question of the article: how are these imaginative
practices related to the development of esotericism? The main hypothesis that
I wish to defend (from now on H1) is that the popular affective piety move70
Counted from data given by Karnes, Imagination, Meditation, and Cognition in the Middle Ages,
146.
24
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
ment of the later Middle Ages, grounded in philosophical developments that
emphasized the power of imagination, provided a context for practices that
we now consider esoteric. In addition, I also put forward the hypothesis that
the fusion of the Aristotelian inner sense tradition with a Neoplatonic epistemology that played out in high scholasticism preigures the sense in which
the imaginative faculty is understood in later esoteric sources (H2). While the
second hypothesis is relatively straight forward, requiring only that we show
how the combination of Aristotelian and Platonic elements characteristic
of scholasticism in fact continues among the Renaissance and early modern
intellectuals that are often seen as revolting against scholastic philosophy, the
notion of “inluence” in H1 requires us to consider in some more detail what
might count as evidence for that particular thesis. I will discuss H1 and H2 in
turn, giving some empirical examples. Finally, I will discuss the issue of why –
despite these connections with what can only be conceived of as orthopraxy
– esoteric practices have, historically, been singled out and presented as a form
of “rejected knowledge”.
5.1 H1: The inluence of Christian devotion on esoteric kataphatic practice
Two lines of evidence are required to support H1: evidence of proximity and
evidence of similarity. By proximity, I mean evidence that establishes direct
sociohistorical contact between the two practices – such as when a practitioner
of A is also a practitioner of B. By similarity, I mean that concrete points of
analogy can be established between practice A and B. When we have both
proximity and similarity, we can argue that constitutive elements of B may have
been borrowed from or inluenced by A.71 Given these criteria, it goes without
saying that a lot more empirical work is needed to fully establish H1 than can
possibly be undertaken here. All I can do in the following discussion is point
to some areas where I believe such evidence ought to be sought.
I have already suggested that the element of similarity rests in a shared
kataphatic practice. In popular devotion and esoteric practices alike (think, for
example, of the practices now classed under “Christian theurgy”72 or, perhaps,
71
Technically, “similarity” alone is about analogical comparisons, while similarity with proximity establishes a homological comparison (whether diachronic or synchronic). For the
intended sense of these terms, see Asprem, “Beyond the West: Towards a New Comparativism in the Study of Esotericism,” Correspondences 2, no. 1 (2014): 3–33.
72
This category includes much that has previously been described (and dismissed) as
“magic”: the ars notoria tradition, along with speciic works such as the Liber iuratus Honorii and
the Liber lorum, along with later forms of “angel magic” and “crystal gazing” all belong to
this category. For a deinition, see Claire Fanger, “Introduction,” in idem (ed.), Invoking Angels:
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
25
“Western learned magic”73), we ind techniques that regulate the practitioner’s
attention to mental imagery, typically with an explicit religious content, and
stress the possibility of receiving some form of illumination or insight through
sustained practice.74 The constitutive element that interests me is, in other
words, not so much a likeness in supericial features, such as speciic symbols,
the wording of a prayer, or even the goal of the practice. Instead, what matters
is that the employed techniques, or the means of the practices are analogous. In
terms of my earlier discussion of “composite ascriptions”, we might even
contrast an “esoteric” kataphatic practice (such as the Liber iuratus’s quest
for a vision of the face of God) from a kataphatic practice of mainstream
Christian piety in terms of similarity in action but difference in goal . Since
I am deining kataphatic practices in terms of their actions rather than their
goals, to establish that one kataphatic practice inspired the emergence of a
new one (as contrasted with a mere stylistic inluence) one must focus on the
steps that make up these patterned practices and how they work with cognitive
dispositions for the cultivation of mental imagery – rather than what precise
meanings they attach to such imagery and to the ultimate goals of the operation. In other words, a serious analysis of these features requires that the terms
of the comparison are grounded in solid knowledge of how mental imagery
cultivation works.75
In terms of establishing evidence of proximity between such practices, I
will make two observations. First, the medieval affective piety movement,
which was spurred on in part by the scholastic rehabilitation of imagination,
was massively popular. Hence, most European Christians would be proximate
to it, if not necessarily expertly skilled. Since “esotericism” does not exist as a
Theurgic Ideas and Practices, Thirteenth to Sixteenth Centuries (University Park, Penn.: Pennsylvania
State University Press, 2012), 16–18. For an overview of its scope in the Middle Ages, see the
other contributions to the same volume.
73
This category, which is much broader than ”Christian theurgy,” has recently been proposed
as a useful conceptual tool for organizing diachronic research on ”magic” by Bernd-Christian
Otto, ”Historicising ’Western Learned Magic’: Preliminary Remarks,” Aries 16, no. 2 (2016):
161–240.
74
For an insightful attempt to disentangle the mental techniques involved in ars notoria and
related practices, see Frank Klaassen, “Subjective Experience and the Practice of Medieval
Ritual Magic,” Magic, Ritual, and Witchcraft 7, no. 1 (2012).
75
On this issue, see Asprem, “Explaining the Esoteric Imagination.” For a useful discussion
of what such a comparative analysis might look like, see Taves, Religious Experience Reconsidered,
149–60. Taves draws, among other things, on medieval gospel meditations and contemporary
Pagan visualization techniques. See also Taves and Asprem, “Experience as Event: Event
Cognition and (Religious) Experience,” Religion, Brain & Behavior (2016): 1–25.
26
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
separate “tradition” apart from the broader religious culture (at least not until the
nineteenth century), it is simply to be expected that broad trends of the general
culture would shape what we have retrospectively come to single out as “esoteric”
elements in that culture. The fact that most people were already acquainted with
techniques for cultivating mental imagery may help explain why the complex
kataphatic procedures of the ars notoria were apparently spreading so rapidly in
precisely the same period.
However, we can also make a more speciic point by homing in on the sociocultural demographic that was most active in developing and disseminating
esoteric practices in medieval Europe. As is well known, priests, monks, and
students of theology are overrepresented. Esoteric practices took shape in what
Richard Kieckhefer has famously called the “clerical underworld”, where young,
often itinerant people aspiring to the priesthood copied and shared manuscripts,
borrowing elements from the liturgy as they went along.76 It is already well established that the exorcism manuals distributed to minor clerics made a permanent
mark on so-called nigromantic practices. We also know that John the Monk’s
Liber lorum was not only written by a Benedictine monk given to visions from a
young age, but that despite several public condemnations and book burnings it
was precisely Benedictine networks that continued to spread and copy the book,
eventually preserving it to the present day.77 Sophie Page’s study of St. Augustine’s
Abbey in Canterbury (more Benedictines) as a site for the collection, copying,
and practice of the full range of available magical procedures provides further
evidence of the importance of this learned, ordained audience to the development of esoteric practice.78 These inluential practitioners were most certainly in
close proximity to kataphatic devotional literature. In fact, they were the experts.
5.2 H2: “The esoteric imagination” preigured by the scholastic fusion of
inner senses with Neoplatonism
H2 is a less ambitious claim, and only requires us to show that the esoteric notion
of “imagination” among Renaissance and early modern intellectuals shows
some continuity with the scholastic combination of Aristotelian and Platonic
elements.79 It will sufice to mention a couple of examples. First, Marsilio
76
Kieckhefer, Magic in the Middle Ages (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2014), 151–75.
See especially the beautiful treatment in Fanger, Rewriting Magic: An Exegesis of the Visionary
Autobiography of a Fourteenth-Century French Monk (University Park: Pennsylvania State University
Press, 2015).
78
Sophie Page, Magic in the Cloister: Pious Motives, Illicit Interests, and Occult Approaches to the Medieval Universe (University Park: Pennsylvania State University Press, 2013).
79
It is worth noting that the connection between scholastic and esoteric thought has been
77
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
27
Ficino (1433–99) is typically considered the chief exponent of Renaissance
Neoplatonism and is often given a central place in historical overviews of the
“vis imaginativa” in what is presumed to be a heavily Platonic esotericism.80
Such narratives, which we ind reproduced by key esotericism scholars like
Faivre, Goodrick-Clarke, Versluis and others, tend to emphasize the power of
imagination as a Platonic innovation over the impotent and passive imaginative
faculty of Aristotle and his scholastic henchmen. There is only one problem
with this story: Ficino’s account of the inner senses is lifted wholeheartedly
from the scholastic tradition! It is true that the Neoplatonic element in Ficino
is what makes the imaginative faculty particularly powerful, but this, we have
seen, was the case already with Bonaventure and to a smaller degree with
Albert and Aquinas. As John Cocking concludes, after summarizing Ficino’s
(inconsistent) pronouncements on sensation, the inner senses, and the intellect
in Theologia Platonica:
[O]n all these topics Ficino has nothing to add to the traditional views of the Neoplatonists, the Arabs and the Scholastics; nor does he favour any one particular
scheme of things rather than another – he simply adopts the common features
of all such accounts of the mind and its faculties and the kinds of experience
involving images.81
Similar things can be said about Ficino’s reinterpretation of Plotinus’
daemons as working on the faculty of imagination (which is an example of
Aristotelianizing Neoplatonism rather than Platonizing Aristotle),82 and about
his passionate defence of the survival of human personality after death.83
recognised by some modern esotericists knowledgeable about Catholicism. The twentieth-century Catholic esoteric author, Valentin Tomberg, recognised the deep compatibility of “high
scholasticism” with what he considered to be “Hermetic” thought – even with explicit reference to Bonaventure. Faivre touched tangentially on this issue in his analysis of Tomberg: see
Faivre, “Analysis of the Meditations of Valentin Tomberg on the Twenty-Two Major Arcana
of the Tarot of Marseille,” in idem, Theosophy, Imagination, Tradition: Studies in Western Esotericism
(Albany: State University of New York Press, 2000), 194.
80
See for example Faivre, “Vis Imaginativa,” 100–101.
81
John Cocking, Imagination: A Study in the History of Ideas (London: Routledge, 1991), 175.
82
This Aristotelian (or rather, scholastic) reinterpretation of the daemon takes place in Ficino’s translation of the Enneads. Moreover, it is largely a riff on Iamblichus, who already synthesized Aristotelian faculty psychology with a Platonic framework (see e.g. De Mysteriis, 3.30).
See Anna Corrias, “From Daemonic Reason to Daemonic Imagination: Plotinus and Marsilio
Ficino on the Soul’s Tutelary Spirit,” British Journal for the History of Philosophy 32, no. 3 (2013).
83
Anna Corrias, “Imagination and Memory in Marsilio Ficino’s Theory of the Vehicles of
the Soul,” The International Journal of the Platonic Tradition 6 (2012).
28
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
The latter was delivered as an attack on contemporary Averroeism, and its
motivation is thus entirely analogous with Aquinas’s De unitate intellectus contra
Averroistas, written almost exactly two centuries earlier. Brian Copenhaver even
argues, on the basis of textual similarities, that Ficino simply copied Averroes’
alleged views from Aquinas’ description in his attack on them.84 Again, what
Ficino contributed was not so much a criticism of something that scholastics
accepted as a new way of using Neoplatonic elements to back up what were
otherwise entirely orthodox scholastic claims: instead of drawing the higher
soul (active intellect) down into the embodied soul, as did Aquinas, Ficino
held that the lower soul containing the inner senses was, in fact, capable of
surviving death. He did this by attaching the Aristotelian inner senses (in
particular imagination and memory) to the pneumatic body or vehicle of
the Neoplatonists. This move harmonized quite easily with the ventricular
theory of the faculties common at the time, which held that the faculties were
associated with the low of air (pneuma) through the ventricles of the brain
rather than with the biological tissue of the brain itself.85
If we fast forward to the early modern period and look at the famous
illustration of the cognitive system in Robert Fludd’s Utriusque cosmi historia
(“History of the two worlds”, 1617–21), we ind once again that it tallies with
the inner senses tradition of the Aristotelian, Islamic, and scholastic psychologists (ig. 3).86 Fludd lodges “imagination” between “sensation” and “mind”,
with a window on to the mundus imaginabilis, the “shadows” of the physical
world. The scholastic interpretation of Aristotle’s agent intellect acting on the
passive intellect through illumination is still echoed in Fludd’s connection of
God and the angels with the “intellectual world”, inluencing the “mind” and
playing a direct part in assessing the images sent forward from imagination.
True, Fludd’s way of connecting the faculties to broader cosmological realities
composed of three distinct worlds – as well as how he explains phenomena
such as prophecy and the occult mantic arts87 – is deeply Neoplatonic. But the
84
Copenhaver, “Ten Arguments in Search of a Philosopher: Averroes and Aquinas in
Ficino’s Platonic Theology,” Vivarium 47, no. 4 (2009).
85
A theory that was, in fact, a retrograde development from the physiologically superior
views of Galen and Avicenna. On the complicated and murky history of ventricular theory,
see Christopher D. Green, “Where Did the Ventricular Localization of Mental Faculties Come
From?,” Journal of History of the Behavioral Sciences 39, no. 2 (2003).
86
See Fludd, Utriusque cosmi historia, Tomus secundus de supernaturali, naturali, præternaturali, Microcosmi historia, in Tractatus tres distributa (Oppenheim: Johann Theodore de Bry, 1619), irst tractate, section I, book X, p. 217.
87
C. H. Josten, “Robert Fludd’s Theory of Geomancy and His Experiences at Avignon in
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
Fig 3. The inner senses according to Robert Fludd
29
30
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
basic grasp of the cognitive system, including the central place of imagination
itself as a mediator between the material and the spiritual, is the heritage of
high scholasticism.
5.3 The Construction of Heteropraxy
In closing this discussion we should consider one inal question: Why, given
their common philosophical frameworks and imagery-based techniques,
have we come to see some of these kataphatic practices as “esoteric” and
others simply as “Christian”? This point concerns the historical production
of “rejected knowledge”, and its often anachronistic projection backward to
earlier periods or to other cultures: Through processes of theological exclusion
and policing of cultural boundaries, theologians and secular scholars alike have
created and reproduced divisions between in- and out-groups in matters of
“orthodoxy”.88 This has led to a proliferation of disjunctions, whereby very
similar practices end up being interpreted as radically different, or even opposite
in intent and character.89 Disjunctions are the usual story with esotericism,
whether we are talking about the bifurcation of “chymistry” into alchemy and
chemistry, the separation of astronomy from astrology, or the pluralization
of kataphatic spirituality that concerns us here. The focus on practice that I
have suggested means that we should expand our focus from the construction
of heterodoxy to the construction of heteropraxy. Since practice is more
readily observable by authorities than beliefs, it seems likely that ecclesiastically
enforced disjunctive strategies should focus on ritual creativity and innovations
on practice that are perceived as “deviant”.90 However, when such innovations
have been separated out and stigmatized as illicit, this may in fact endow these
practices with a selective advantage among certain demographics, precisely due
to their allegedly subversive character. As Leen Spruit has argued, the indexes
of illicit literature created by the Catholic Church in the later Middle Ages and
Renaissance came to serve as lists of recommended reading for Protestant
reformers, religious dissidents, and those desiring forbidden knowledge.91 If
the Winter of 1601 to 1602,” Journal of the Warburg and Courtauld Institutes 27 (1964).
Hanegraaff, Esotericism and the Academy.
89
On disjunctive strategies and their impact on our interpretation of history, see especially
von Stuckrad, The Scientiication of Religion, 25–55.
90
On the dificulties involved in determining the “deviance” of what are often rather popular
and widespread practices, see the discussion in Otto, “Historicising ’Western Learned Magic’,”
203–207.
91
Leen Spruit, “Censorship and Canon: A Note on Some Medieval Works and Authors,” in
How the West Was Won: On the Problems of Canon and Literary Imagination, with a Special Emphasis
88
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
31
Rome forbade it, Protestant printers loved to sell it.
I already touched on what seems a crucial process in the creation of heteropraxy, namely what we might call a “displacement of goals”.92 In a Catholic
context, focusing intently on one’s mental imagery guided by exceptional cleanliness and prayer is seen as a noble thing if the image is the passion of Christ
and the goal to comprehend God’s suffering and sacriice on behalf of humanity. When the same techniques are oriented toward images of angels with
the intent of gaining knowledge of the liberal arts, the practice is considered
dangerous magic and the books instructing it should be committed to the
lames. John of Morigny’s Liber lorum remains a good example: the book’s
condemnation and burning in Paris in 1323 secured its status of heteropraxy,
commanding the need for caution and secrecy, but also adding an attractive
aura of transgressive power to those seeking forbidden fruit in the clerical underworld. These observations offer clues for further research on the creation
of heteropraxy in the Middle Ages, whether through Aquinas’ theological
condemnation of ars notoria, the inclusion of various unnamed works of necromancy, geomancy, and witchcraft among Bishop Tempier’s condemnations
of 1277, or the physical extermination of practice manuals, as in the case of
Liber lorum.93
6. Conclusion
Looking at practices related to the imagination provides additional evidence
that “esotericism” is an endogenous phenomenon in European religious
history, which has gradually been separated out by disjunctive strategies rooted
in the policing of orthopraxy. Particularly, I have argued that esoteric practice
is intimately interwoven with the development of kataphatic spiritual practices with a basis in medieval theories of imagination that are rooted in the
Arabic tradition of commentary on Aristotle. Based on this narrative, I have
formulated two hypotheses: that esoteric kataphatic practices owe much to
on the Middle Ages, ed. W. Otten, A. Vanderjagt, and H. de Vries (Leiden: Brill, 2010), 177.
92
This is meant in rough analogy to the sociological notion of goal displacement, which
focuses on how an instrumental activity originally pursued to obtain some goal may, over time,
become a goal in its own right. This is a key characteristic of bureaucracies. See e.g. W. Keith
Warner and A. Eugene Havens, “Goal Displacement and the Intangibility of Organizational
Goals,” Administrative Science Quarterly 12, no. 4 (1968): 539–55.
93
On the condemnations of Bishop Tempier, see John Wippel, “The Condemnations of
1270 and 1277 at Paris.”
32
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
developments in late-medieval Christian piety, and that “esoteric” conceptions
of imagination are indebted to the scholastic fusion of Aristotelian faculty
psychology and Neoplatonic illuminationist theology. I have discussed some
evidence that might support both hypotheses, but have suggested that more
empirical work is called for. In conclusion, I wish to list what I see as the three
most important domains on which such future empirical work should focus.
First, more attention needs to be given to the Medieval period, both as
a context for the emergence of key practices and for the development of
exclusionary strategies that form later disjunctions between orthopraxy and
heteropraxy in the domain of kataphatic spirituality. Historians of magic have
already paved the way; scholars of esotericism should work to integrate these
studies fully into their narratives, and bring in a diachronic perspective that
allows us to see how medieval developments shaped later esoteric currents.
Secondly, the story I have told here suggests that the scholastic as opposed
to the humanist roots of Renaissance and early modern esotericism still deserves further investigation. Do we, perhaps, need to get rid of the artiicial
markers of epochs such as “Medieval” and “Renaissance” in order to negate
the boundary-work that the humanists so successfully put in place to distinguish themselves from the scholastics? Or do we, after all, want to make a
bold argument in favour of the radical novelty of the Neoplatonic syntheses
of the ifteenth century – even though such syntheses have their obvious
precursors? Whichever way we want to settle these questions, it seems evident
that we cannot tell the esotericism story in terms of Aristotle versus Plato (and
Hermes and zarathustra): the ancient sages were hybridized in the minds of
philosophers and theologians long before some wealthy Italian patrons paid
scholars to philosophize in private palaces instead of universities and monasteries.
Third, the Islamic background of core ideas and practices deserves much
more attention. Again, intellectual historians focusing on magic and science
have laid the foundations long ago. So far, it is mostly “occult sciences” like
astrology and magic that have caught the attention of scholars of esotericism.94
See for example the recent work of Liana Saif, The Arabic Inluences on Early Modern Occult
Philosophy (Palgrave Macmillan, 2015), which focuses on astrology. Medievalists studying magic
have made major contributions to this line of research for decades. See especially the works
of Charles Burnett – too numerous to be listed here, but see e.g. Burnett, Arabic into Latin in
the Middle Ages: The Translators and their Intellectual and Social Contacts (London: Routledge, 2009);
Burnett, Magic and Divination in the Middle Ages: Texts and Techniques in the Islamic and Christian
Worlds (Aldershot: Variorum, 1996); Burnett and Contadini (eds.), Islam and the Italian Renaissance (London: Warburg Institute Colloquia, 1999.
94
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
33
In addition to this important work we also need to look carefully at the Islamic
context of quite orthodox ideas on human nature and humanity’s relation to
the natural world and to God. In short, historicizing the imaginative faculty
and unweaving its connections with practices and theological doctrines forces
us to question some of the foundational assumptions of the ield, pushing the
study of “esotericism” backwards in history and outwards from Europe, to the
Islamicate world and beyond.
Acknowledgements
The article was written during (and made possible by) a six-month research stay
at the Department of Philosophy and Religious Studies, Norwegian University
of Science and Technology. Revisions following peer review were completed
at the Department of Ethnology, History of Religions, and Gender Studies,
Stockholm University.
Literature
Asprem, Egil. “Beyond the West: Towards a New Comparativism in the Study of Esotericism.” Correspondences 2, no. 1 (2014): 3–33.
Asprem, Egil. The Problem of Disenchantment: Scientiic Naturalism and Esoteric Discourse, 1900–
1939. Leiden & Boston: Brill, 2014.
Asprem, Egil. “Reverse-Engineering ‘Esotericism’: How to Prepare a Complex Cultural
Concept for the Cognitive Science of Religion.” Religion 46, no. 2 (2016): 158–85.
Asprem, Egil. “Explaining the Esoteric Imagination: Towards a Theory of Kataphatic
Practice.” Aries 17, no. 1 (forthcoming).
Black, Deborah. “Imagination and Estimation: Arabic Paradigm and Western Transformations.” Topoi 19 (2000): 59–75.
Blumenthal, H. J. “Neoplatonic Interpretations of Aristotle on Phantasia.” The Review of
Metaphysics 31, no. 2 (1977): 242–57.
Boer, Sander de. The Science of the Soul: The Commentary Tradition on Aristotle’s De Anima, c. 1260–
1360. Leuven: Leuven University Press, 2013.
Bogdan, Henrik. Western Esotericism and Rituals of Initiation. Albany: State University of New
York Press, 2007.
Bonaventure, The Journey of the Mind to God, ed. Stephen F. Brown, trans. Philotheus Boehner.
Indianapolis: Hackett Publishing Company, Inc., 1993.
Bourdieu, Pierre. Outline of a Theory of Practice. Translated by Richard Nice. Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 1977.
Breyfogle, Todd. “Memory and Imagination in Augustine’s Confessions.” New Blackfriars 75
(1994): 210–23.
Burnett, Charles. Arabic into Latin in the Middle Ages: The Translators and their Intellectual and Social
Contacts. London: Routledge, 2009.
34
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
Burnett, Charles. Magic and Divination in the Middle Ages: Texts and Techniques in the Islamic and
Christian Worlds. Aldershot: Variorum, 1996.
Burnett, Charles and Anna Contadini (eds.). Islam and the Italian Renaissance. London: Warburg
Institute Colloquia, 1999.
Cocking, John. Imagination: A Study in the History of Ideas. London: Routledge, 1991.
Copenhaver, Brian. “Ten Arguments in Search of a Philosopher: Averroes and Aquinas in
Ficino’s Platonic Theology.” Vivarium 47, no. 4 (2009): 444–79.
Corrias, Anna. “Imagination and Memory in Marsilio Ficino’s Theory of the Vehicles of the
Soul.” The International Journal of the Platonic Tradition 6 (2012): 81–114.
Corrias, Anna. “From Daemonic Reason to Daemonic Imagination: Plotinus and Marsilio Ficino
on the Soul’s Tutelary Spirit.” British Journal for the History of Philosophy 32, no. 3 (2013): 443–62.
Doel, Marieke van den and Wouter J. Hanegraaff. “Imagination.” In Dictionary of Gnosis &
Western Esotericism, edited by Wouter J. Hanegraaff et al., 606–616. Leiden and Boston:
Brill, 2005.
Egan, Harvey D. “Christian Apophatic and Kataphatic Mysticisms.” Theological Studies 39, no.
3 (1978): 399–426.
Engell, James. The Creative Imagination: Enlightenment to Romanticism. Cambridge: Harvard
University Press, 1981.
Faivre, Antoine. Access to Western Esotericism. Albany: State University of New York Press, 1994.
Faivre, Antoine. Theosophy, Imagination, Tradition: Studies in Western Esotericism. Albany: State
University of New York Press, 2000.
Faivre, Antoine. “Analysis of the Meditations of Valentin Tomberg on the Twenty-Two Major
Arcana of the Tarot of Marseille.” In Theosophy, Imagination, Tradition: Studies in Western Esotericism, 191–228. Albany: State University of New York Press, 2000.
Faivre, Antoine. “Vis imaginativa: A Study of Some Aspects of the Imagination and Its Mythical Foundations.” In Theosophy, Imagination, Tradition: Studies in Western Esotericism, 99-–35.
Albany: Press, 2002.
Fanger, Claire (ed.). Invoking Angels: Theurgic Ideas and Practices, Thirteenth to Sixteenth Centuries.
University Park: Pennsylvania State University Press, 2012.
Fanger, Claire. “Introduction.” In Invoking Angels: Theurgic Ideas and Practices, Thirteenth to Sixteenth
Centuries, edited by Claire Fanger, 1-33. University Park: Pennsylvania State University
Press, 2012.
Fanger, Claire. Rewriting Magic: An Exegesis of the Visionary Autobiography of a Fourteenth-Century
French Monk. University Park: Pennsylvania State University Press, 2015.
Gavrilyuk, Paul L. and Sarah Coakley (eds.). The Spiritual Senses: Perceiving God in Western
Christianity. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press, 2011.
Granholm, Kennet. Dark Enlightenment: The Historical, Sociological, and Discursive Contexts of Contemporary Esoteric Magic. Leiden: Brill, 2014.
Green, Christopher D. “Where Did the Ventricular Localization of Mental Faculties Come
From?” Journal of History of the Behavioral Sciences 39, no. 2 (2003): 131–42.
Hakl, Hans Thomas. Eranos: An Alternative Intellectual History of the Twentieth Century. Shefield:
Equinox, 2013.
Hale, Amy. “Navigating Praxis: Pagan Studies vs. Esoteric Studies.” The Pomegranate 15, no.
1–2 (2013): 151–63.
Hammer, Olav. Claiming Knowledge: Strategies of Epistemology from Theosophy to the New Age. Leiden
and Boston: Brill, 2001.
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
35
Hanegraaff, Wouter J., with Antoine Faivre, Roelof van den Broek, and Jean-Pierre Brach
(eds.). Dictionary of Gnosis & Western Esotericism. Leiden and Boston: Brill, 2005.
Hanegraaff, Wouter J. “Sympathy or the Devil: Renaissance Magic and the Ambivalence of
Idols.” Esoterica 2 (2000): 1–44.
Hanegraaff, Wouter J. “Beyond the Yates Paradigm: The Study of Western Esotericism
between Counterculture and New Complexity.” Aries 1, no. 1 (2001): 5–37.
Hanegraaff, Wouter J. “Reason, Faith, and Gnosis: Potentials and Problematics of a Typological
Construct.” In Clashes of Knowledge: Orthodoxies and Heterodoxies in Science and Religion, edited
by Peter Meusburger, Michael Welker, Edgar Wunder, 133–44. Klaus Tschira Stiftung /
Springer, 2008.
Hanegraaff, Wouter J. Esotericism and the Academy: Rejected Knowledge in Western Culture. Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 2012.
Hanegraaff, Wouter J. “Entheogenic Esotericism.” In Contemporary Esotericism, edited by Egil
Asprem and Kennet Granholm, 392–409. Shefield: Equinox Publishing, 2013.
Hanegraaff, Wouter J. “The Globalization of Esotericism.” Correspondences 3 (2015): 55–91.
Innocent XI. “Condemning the Errors of Miguel de Molinos [Coelestis Pastor].” Issued
November 20, 1687. Papal Encyclicas Online, url: http://www.papalencyclicals.net/Innoc11/
i11coel.htm (accessed April 17, 2016).
Josten, C. H. “Robert Fludd’s Theory of Geomancy and His Experiences at Avignon in the
Winter of 1601 to 1602,” Journal of the Warburg and Courtauld Institutes 27 (1964): 327–35
Karnes, Michelle. Imagination, Meditation, and Cognition in the Middle Ages. Chicago and London:
University of Chicago Press, 2011.
Klaassen, Frank. “Subjective Experience and the Practice of Medieval Ritual Magic.” Magic,
Ritual, and Witchcraft 7, no. 1 (2012): 19–51.
Kosslyn, Stephen M., William L. Thompson, and Giorgio Ganis. The Case for Mental Imagery.
Oxford and New York: Oxford University Press, 2006.
Louth, Andrew. ”Apophatic and Kataphatic Theology.” In The Cambridge Companion to Christian
Mysticism, edited by Amy Hollywood and Patricia z. Beckman. Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press, 2012.
Luhrmann, Tanya M. Persuasions of the Witch’s Craft: Ritual Magic in Contemporary England.
Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1989.
Luhrmann, Tanya M. When God Talks Back: Understanding the American Evangelical Relationship
with God. New York: Vintage Books, 2012.
Luhrmann, Tanya M. and Rachel Morgain. “Prayer as Inner Sense Cultivation: An Attentional
Learning Theory of Spiritual Experience.” Ethos 40, no. 4 (2012): 359–89.
Luhrmann, Tanya M., Howard Nusbaum, and Ronald Thisted. “‘Lord, Teach Us to Pray’:
Prayer Practice Affects Cognitive Processing.” Journal of Cognition and Culture 13 (2013):
159–77.
Neugebauer-Wölk, Monika. “Esoterik und Christentum vor 1800: Prolegomena zu einer
Bestimmung ihrer Differenz.“ Aries 3, no. 2 (2003): 127–65.
Noll, Richard. “Mental Imagery Cultivation as a Cultural Phenomenon: The Role of Visions
in Shamanism.” Current Anthropology 26, no. 4 (1985): 443–61.
Otto, Bernd-Christian. ”Historicising ’Western Learned Magic’: Preliminary Remarks.” Aries
16, no. 2 (2016): 161–240.
Page, Sophie. Magic in the Cloister: Pious Motives, Illicit Interests, and Occult Approaches to the Medieval
Universe. University Park: Pennsylvania State University Press, 2013.
36
Asprem / Correspondences 4 (2016) 3–36
Pasnau, Robert. Theories of Cognition in the Later Middle Ages. Cambridge: Cambridge University
Press, 1997.
Pennington, Basil. Centering Prayer: Renewing an Ancient Christian Prayer Form. Garden City:
Doubleday, 2001. First edition 1980.
Plaisance, Christopher A. “Magic Made Modern? Re-evaluating the Novelty of the Golden
Dawn’s Magic.” Correspondences 2, no. 2 (2014): 159–87.
Roepstorff, Andreas, Jörg Niewöhner, and Stefan Beck. “Enculturing Brains through Patterned
Practices.” Neural Networks 23, no. 8–9 (2010): 1051–59.
Roure, Lucien. “Visions and Apparitions.” The Catholic Encyclopedia, Vol. 15. New York: Robert
Appleton Company, 1912. URL: <http://www.newadvent.org/cathen/15477a.htm> (accessed 18 April, 2016).
Saif, Liana. The Arabic Inluences on Early Modern Occult Philosophy. Basingstoke and New York:
Palgrave Macmillan, 2015.
Schroeder, Frederic M. “Light and the Active Intellect in Alexander and Plotinus,” Hermes 112,
no. 2 (1984), 239–48.
Spruit, Leen. Species Intelligibilis: From Perception to Knowledge. 2 vols. Leiden and New York: Brill,
1994, 1995.
Spruit, Leen. “Censorship and Canon: A Note on Some Medieval Works and Authors.” In How
the West Was Won: On the Problems of Canon and Literary Imagination, with a Special Emphasis
on the Middle Ages, edited by W. Otten, A. Vanderjagt, and H. de Vries, 175–94. Leiden and
Boston: Brill, 2010.
Stuckrad, Kocku von. “Western Esotericism: Towards an Integrative Model of Interpretation.”
Religion 34 (2005): 78–97.
Stuckrad, Kocku von. Locations of Knowledge in Medieval and Early Modern Europe: Esoteric Discourse
and Western Identities. Leiden: Brill, 2010.
Stuckrad, Kocku von. “Mysticism, Gnosticism, and Esotericism as Entangled Discourses.” In
Histories of the Hidden God: Concealment and Revelation in Western Gnostic, Esoteric, and Mystical
Traditions, edited by April D. DeConinck and Grant Adamson, 312–19. Durham: Acumen,
2013.
Stuckrad, Kocku von. The Scientiication of Religion: An Historical Study of Discursive Change, 1800–
2000. Berlin: De Gruyter, 2014.
Taves, Ann. Religious Experience Reconsidered: A Building-Block Approach to the Study of Religion and
Other Special Things. Princeton and Oxford: Princeton University Press, 2009.
Taves, Ann and Egil Asprem. “Experience as Event: Event Cognition and (Religious)
Experience.” Religion, Brain & Behavior (2016): 1–25. DOI: 10.1080/2153599X.2016.1150327.
Warner, W. Keith and A. Eugene Havens. “Goal Displacement and the Intangibility of Organizational Goals,” Administrative Science Quarterly 12.4 (1968): 539–55.
Wippel, John. “The Condemnations of 1270 and 1277 at Paris.” Journal of Medieval and Renaissance Studies 7, no.2 (1977): 169–201.
Wolfson, Harry Austryn. “The Internal Senses in Latin, Arabic, and Hebrew Philosophical
Texts.” The Harvard Theological Review 28, no. 2 (1935): 69–133.
Yates, Frances. The Art of Memory. London: Routledge and Kegan Paul, 1966.
Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
ISSN: 2053-7158 (Online)
correspondencesjournal.com
The “Baphomet” of Eliphas Lévi:
Its Meaning and Historical Context
Julian Strube
E-mail: julian.strube@zegk.uni-heidelberg.de
Abstract
Although the Baphomet drawn by Eliphas Lévi (i.e., Alphonse-Louis Constant, 1810–1875)
is one of the most famous esoteric images worldwide, very little is known about its context
of emergence. It is well established that it has to be seen as a symbolic representation of
Lévi’s magnetistic-magical concept of the Astral Light, but the historical background of this
meaning remains largely obscure. This article demonstrates that a historical contextualization
of the Baphomet leads to an understanding of its meaning that is signiicantly different from
prevalent interpretations. It will irstly be shown that the formation of Lévi’s historical narrative
can only be comprehended in the light of his radical socialist writings from the 1840s. It will
then be discussed which sources he used to elaborate and re-signify this narrative. Secondly,
it will be investigated how Lévi developed his magical theory in the 1850s by focusing on the
contexts of “spiritualistic magnetism,” Spiritism, and Catholicism. This analysis will show
that the Baphomet should be seen as more than a symbolization of Lévi’s magical theory. It
is the embodiment of a politically connoted tradition of “true religion” which would realize
a synthesis of religion, science, and politics.
Keywords
Eliphas Lévi; Baphomet; occultism; socialism; Catholicism; magnetism
© 2016 Julian Strube
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
38
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
(Figure 1)
1. Introduction
Eliphas Lévi’s androgynous, goat-headed “Baphomet” is one of the most
widely spread images with esoteric background. The drawing was originally
published in the irst livraisons of Lévi’s famous Dogme de la haute magie, published by Guiraudet et Jouaust in 1854, and featured as the frontispiece for the
two-volume edition of Dogme et rituel de la haute magie, published by Germer
Baillière in 1855–1856, and for the extended second edition of 1861 (igure 1).
Today, the image and its countless variations are highly popular in new religious
movements and subcultures, most notably the various metal or gothic scenes.
It is frequently used in decidedly provocative counter-cultural contexts. In
2015, the so-called Satanic Temple unveiled a massive monument inspired by
the Baphomet drawing. The statue was intended as a tongue-in-cheek protest
against what was perceived as an improperly close relationship between religion
and the state. The organizers, who successfully attracted enormous media interest, could draw on a close association between the Baphomet, devil worship,
and Satanism that had been established at least since the 1960s but reaches
back to the end of the nineteenth century.1 In this context, the Baphomet is
1
Cf. Christopher McIntosh, Eliphas Lévi and the French Occult Revival, 2nd ed. (London: Rider,
1975), 206–18 and Ruben van Luijk, “Satan Rehabilitated? A Study Into Satanism During the
Nineteenth Century” (Dissertation, Universiteit van Tilburg, 2013), 241–323.
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
39
often—and erroneously—identiied with an inverted pentagram superimposed
on a goat’s head, a symbol that was irst indicated by Eliphas Lévi himself and
later visualized by occultists such as Stanislas de Guaïta (1861–1897), in his Clef
de la magie noire from 1897.2 This variant was perhaps most prominently used
by Anton Szandor LaVey (1930–1997) in his Satanic Bible (1969), where it is
explicitly identiied as “Baphomet.” It does not come as a surprise, then, that
the Baphomet is often associated with Satanism and anti-Christian attitudes.
At the same time, it is well known that Eliphas Lévi hardly qualiies as a
Satanist, and that the meaning of the drawing, as ghastly as it may appear to the
beholder, is neither satanic nor anti-Christian. There is a wealth of academic
and non-academic literature that points out Lévi’s intention: a symbolization
of the equilibrium of opposites. The magnetistic connotation of this concept
was made very explicit by the author, and both early esoteric recipients such as
Helena Blavatsky, in 1877, and later scholars such as Christopher McIntosh, in
1975, emphasized this.3 While it is very easy to learn about the notion of the
“Astral Light” that formed the foundation of Lévi’s magnetistic theory, almost
no attention has been paid to the actual historical context in which he developed his understanding of the Baphomet.4 Although it is obvious that Lévi
related it to the Knights Templar, the actual sources he used to develop the
historical narrative in which he located the Templars has not been investigated.
This is mainly due to the fact that most observers more or less implicitly accept
the idea that Lévi was the continuator of an esoteric tradition, a rénovateur de
l’occultisme, who was less dependent on the historical context of the 1840s and
1850s than on ancient esoteric doctrines.5
2
Cf. Eliphas Lévi, Dogme et rituel de la haute magie, 2nd ed., 2 vols., vol. 2 (Paris/London/New
York: Germer Baillière, 1861), 93–94, 98, and Stanislas de Guaïta, Essais de sciences maudites, vol.
2: Le Serpent de la Genèse, seconde septaine: La clef de la magie noire (Paris: Henri Durville, 1920), 417.
3
Cf. Helena Petrovna Blavatsky, Isis Unveiled: A Master-Key to the Mysteries of Ancient and Modern
Science and Theology, 2 vols., vol. 1 (New York/London: J. W. Bouton/Bernard Quaritch, 1877),
137–38; The Secret Doctrine. The Synthesis of Science, Religion, and Philosophy, 3rd ed., 3 vols., vol. 1
(London: The Theosophical Publishing House, 1893), 273–74 and McIntosh, Eliphas Lévi, 150.
4
With the notable exception of Karl Baier, Meditation und Moderne. Zur Genese eines Kernbereichs
moderner Spiritualität in der Wechselwirkung zwischen Westeuropa, Nordamerika und Asien, 2 vols., vol.
1 (Würzburg: Königshausen & Neumann, 2009), 265–77.
5
This was established by Paul Chacornac, Eliphas Lévi. Rénovateur de l’Occultisme en France
(1810–1875) (Paris: Chacornac Frères, 1989), who reproduced narratives that were developed
by French occultists such as Papus or Stanislas de Guaïta. See Julian Strube, Sozialismus,
Katholizisimus und Okkultismus im Frankreich des 19. Jahrhunderts. Die Genealogie der Schriften von
Eliphas Lévi, Religionsgeschichtliche Versuche und Vorarbeiten (Berlin/Boston: De Gruyter,
2016), 590–618.
40
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
In what follows, it will be shown that Lévi’s Baphomet appears in a different light if it is historically contextualized. When developing his historical
narrative, Lévi was informed by scholarly debates about the emergence and
early development of Christianity, which often revolved around the question
of “true” religion and its role in contemporary society. The meaning and
intention of this narrative can only be comprehended if one takes into consideration the ideas that he had propagated in the 1840s under his civil name
Alphonse-Louis Constant, when he was known as one of the most notorious
socialist radicals.6 At that time, he claimed to be the representative of a “true”
Catholicism which he opposed to the corrupted Christianity of the Churches,
and which he vehemently identiied with “true” socialism. He regarded himself
as the latest representative of a long tradition of revolutionary heretics who
struggled for the realization of a universal religious association. In the 1850s,
he re-signiied and elaborated this narrative, now identifying “occultism” with
“true Catholicism” and, at times more or less explicitly, with “true socialism.”7
His Baphomet has to be seen as an iconic representation of this “true” doctrine, as the Knights Templar were considered to be the successors of the very
same heretical revolutionary tradition that reached back to the “Gnostics” of
the late ancient School of Alexandria, the environment where the momentous
separation between “true” and “false” religion supposedly took place. In this
light, the Baphomet is not only a magnetistic symbol representing Lévi’s theory
of magic, but irst and foremost an embodiment of the one and only true
tradition whose ultimate goal is the establishment of a perfect social order.
2. Lévi’s Depiction of the Baphomet
It is relatively easy to trace the visual inspirations of Lévi’s notorious drawing.
Obviously, the Baphomet is depicted by Lévi primarily as a goat-like igure, which
is further emphasized by its identiication with the “Goat of Mendes” or the
“sabbatical goat.” Depictions of a horned, goat-like demonic creature, or the
devil himself, were widespread. When Lévi wrote his books, the topos of a goat
being present at witches’ sabbaths had been commonplace for centuries. Having
6
As this article focuses on the period when Constant wrote under his new pseudonym, he
will only be referred to as Eliphas Lévi. His publications, however, will be listed using the name
under which they were published.
7
Julian Strube, “Socialist Religion and the Emergence of Occultism: A Genealogical Approach
to Socialism and Secularization in 19th-Century France,” Religion 46, no. 3 (2016): 371–79.
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
41
received an ecclesiastical education, Lévi did repeatedly mention several “classics”
of demonology, such as Jean Bodin’s famous De la demonomanie des sorciers (1580),
but he only referred to or cited more recent works, such as Augustin Calmet’s
Traité sur les apparitions des esprits et sur les vampires (1758) and Jean Baptiste Thiers’
Traité des superstitions qui regardent les sacrements (1697), where the sabbatical goat is
discussed.8 On a graphical level, most readers will be familiar with prints such
as those of the Compendium maleicarum (1608) that show a goat-headed, winged
Devil who bears much resemblance to Lévi’s Baphomet (igure 2). Due to the
omnipresence of similar depictions, it is both impossible and needless to determine a limited set of sources for this motif. But there is little doubt that the most
direct inspiration for the Baphomet drawing was the Tarot card “Le Diable” from
the Marseille deck (igure 3), which was regarded by Lévi as the inest surviving
version.9 Some other inluences are more or less explicitly mentioned, namely the
famous alchemical androgyne in Heinrich Khunrath’s Amphitheatrum sapientiae
aeternae (1595, igure 4), as well as a print from 1639 which joins Clovis Hesteau
de Nuysement’s Traittez de l’harmonie et constitution generalle du vray sel, secret des philosophes, et de l’esprit universel du monde together with other alchemical tracts (igure 5).10 In
the beginning of his Dogme, Lévi provided a fairly detailed description of how he
understood the symbolism of each element of his eclectically assembled igure.11
8
Among those, the numerous references to Calmet in Alphonse-Louis Constant, Dictionnaire
de littérature chrétienne, ed. Abbé Migne (Paris: J.-P. Migne, 1851), e.g. 249; Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 2,
286–88 and to Thiers in Constant, Dictionnaire, 384; Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 2, 308. Cf. the original
passages in Augustin Calmet, Traité sur les apparitions des esprits et sur les vampires, vol. 1 (Senones:
Joseph Pariset, 1769), 119–20 and Jean Baptiste Thiers, Traité des superstitions qui regardent les
sacrements, vol. 2 (Paris: Antoine Dezallier, 1697), 365–68.
9
Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 2, 172. Lévi mentioned the “Italian Tarot,” which at the time signiied
the Tarot of Marseille, as well as the Tarot of Besançon, which was based on the Marseille
deck. For further information on Lévi and the Tarot, see Strube, Sozialismus, 442–45, 78–79,
500–01, 61–463 and Ronald Decker, Thierry Depaulis, and Michael Dummett, A Wicked Pack
of Cards: The origins of the Occult Tarot (London: Duckworth, 1996), esp. 166–93.
10 See Clovis Hesteau de Nuysement, Traittez de l’harmonie et constitution généralle du vray sel, secret
des philosophes, et de l’esprit universelle du monde, suivant le troisiesme principe du Cosmopolite (La Haye:
Theodore Maire, 1639), between the preface and the dedication, cf. Eliphas Lévi, Dogme et rituel,
236 and ibid., 2: 208, 22–23 For more about Hesteau de Nuysement, see Kathleen P. Long,
Hermaphrodites in Renaissance Europe: Women and Gender in the Early Modern World (Aldershot/
Burlington: Ashgate, 2006), 137–62. About the engravings in Khunrath, see Peter J. Forshaw,
“‘Alchemy in the Amphitheatre’. Some Consideration of the Alchemical Content of the
Engravings in Heinrich Khunrath’s ‘Amphitheatre of Eternal Wisdom’,” in Art and Alchemy,
ed. Jacob Wamberg (Kopenhagen: Museum Tusculanum Press, 2006).
11 Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 1, VI–VII. Cf. Ibid., 2: 211–12 and La clef des grands mystères (Paris:
42
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
(Figure 2)
(Figure 3)
(Figure 4)
(Figure 5)
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
43
Apart from these visual aspects, the magnetistic context of the Baphomet
was expressed repeatedly by Lévi, his publishers, and his critics. In 1854,
Guiraudet et Jouaust advertised for Dogme et rituel de la haute magie with an
extract from the irst volume, which at that time was still a work in progress.12
The selected passage, which has been abbreviated for the advertisement, is still
among the most quoted from Lévi’s oeuvre:
There exists in nature a force which is much more powerful than steam. ... This
force was known to the ancients: it consists of a universal agent whose supreme
law is equilibrium, and whose direction is concerned immediately with the great
arcanum of transcendental magic. ... This agent, which barely manifests itself
under the trial and error of the disciples of Mesmer, is exactly what the adepts
of the Middle Ages called the irst matter of the great work. The Gnostics represented it as the iery body of the Holy Spirit, and it was the object of adoration
in the secret rites of the Sabbath or the Temple, under the hieroglyphic igure of
Baphomet or the Androgynous Goat of Mendes.13
This passages makes perfectly clear that Dogme et rituel was presented and
understood as a magnetistic work, which wanted to distance itself from
Mesmerist publications. It is remarkable that Lévi did not attempt to challenge
other magnetists on the grounds of practical experiments; instead his argument
was a thoroughly historical one. Claiming to possess the key to a tradition
of superior secret, ancient knowledge, he dismissed the “Mesmerists” as
amateurish dabblers who could only guess what powers they are dealing with.
The protagonists of Lévi’s tradition are openly named: the medieval “adepts”
who were the successors of the ancient Gnostics, most prominent among
them the Templars who worshipped the Baphomet. Lévi did not claim to
depict the exact idol that was supposedly the object of adoration of medieval
adepts, but he did claim to present an allegorical drawing of the ideas that
were represented by it. First and foremost, he described the Baphomet as a
“pantheistic and magical igure of the absolute” and identiied it with Pan.14 It
Baillière, 1861), 234.
12
A note informed the readers in the future tense that “this work will be limited to 500”
copies and “will be composed of 20 livraisons,” in addition to the present one. Subscribers
“before October 15th, 1854” would receive a discount, and if “it should need more than 20
livraisons to complete this work” the additional numbers would be free. This allows for a
dating ante quem and shows that the eventual size of the volume was as yet unclear.
13
Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 1, 83–84. The translations in this article do not rely on Waite’s translations of Lévi’s works.
14
Ibid., VI.
44
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
was much more than an imaginative symbol for a magnetistic theory. It stood
for a speciic secret tradition that formed the key to the understanding of the
true form of religion. The narrative that forms this “traditional” background of
the Baphomet has, until recently, not been historically contextualized. It will be
shown that the Baphomet is more than a bricolage of older esoteric traditions.
Its meaning can only be understood in the context of the 1840s and 1850s.
3. Lévi’s Historical Narrative and its Sources
The fundamental idea behind Lévi’s writings was the existence of a single,
true tradition that resulted from a primitive revelation.15 Due to a series of
degenerations and misinterpretations destroying this pristine unity, the religious traditions of humanity had multiplied, but they all carried traces of the
universal divine dogma. Explaining the meaning of the pentagram that adorns
the Baphomet’s head, Lévi declared that “every new cult is just a new route
to lead humanity to the one religion, that of the sacred and the radiant pentagram, the sole eternal Catholicism.”16 It has already been indicated that Lévi had
identiied as the representative of “true” Catholicism since his radical writings
of the 1840s, a self-understanding that he constantly articulated in his occultist
writings. The major inluence on his Catholic identity was the famous priest
Félicité de Lamennais (1782–1854), the founder of a so-called “Neo-Catholic”
movement that sought to establish a progressive form of Catholicism that was
marked by a rationalistic and scientiic stance. After spectacularly breaking with
Rome, Lamennais turned to a Christian socialism in 1834 that inspired a whole
generation of young socialists, including Lévi, who was perceived by contemporaries as one of his most radical disciples.17 A key concept of Lamennais and
other Neo-Catholic authors was the révélation primitive, a theory that sought to
prove the eternal and exclusive truth of Catholicism on the basis of “historical
evidence” gathered from all religious traditions.18 Lévi’s approach to history
decisively relied on this theory, as becomes most obvious in the light of his
15
See, e.g., Histoire de la magie (Paris: Baillière, 1860), 256.
Dogme et rituel, 2, 98.
17
Strube, “Socialist Religion,” 372; “Ein neues Christentum. Frühsozialismus, NeoKatholizismus und die Einheit von Religion und Wissenschaft,” Zeitschrift für Religions- und
Geistesgeschichte 66, no. 2 (2014): 154–60.
18
For more details, see Sozialismus, 190–96; “Socialist Religion,” 377 and Arthur McCalla, “The
Mennaisian ‘Catholic Science of Religion’: Epistemology and History in Early NineteenthCentury French Study,” Method and Theory in the Study of Religion 21, no. 3 (2009).
16
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
45
constant emphasis on the true tradition being nothing else but “Catholicism.”19
Similar to Neo-Catholic writers, he certainly did not seek to abolish the Church
but to reform it and establish its true character, which would eventually lead to
a universal—that is literally “Catholic”—religion of humanity. However, his
attitude towards the status quo of the Church was much more radical in that it
was marked by an aggressive anti-clericalism, directed not against the ofice of
the priest but against the corrupted holders of this ofice.20
This concerns one of the aspects that can be most confusing for the readers
of Lévi’s works. His occultist narrative is marked by an ambiguousness that
often appears incoherent and self-contradictory. He constantly emphasizes
the need for the “authority and hierarchy” of the Church while denouncing
it as corrupted in the most aggressive terms.21 In a similar vein, he frequently
attacked the supposed holders of pristine knowledge—such as the Gnostics,
the Templars, or the Freemasons—as corrupted and ignorant, while at the same
time depicting them as the heirs of the one and only secret tradition. Although it
can hardly be denied that there are numerous inconsistencies in Lévi’s narrative,
especially when one compares the volumes of Dogme et rituel with his later works,
it gains a lot of clarity when one realizes that he understood the succession of
“adepts” as a history of repeated corruptions. From early on, the wise bearers
of the one true dogma saw the need to conceal it from the “masses,” but at
some point they lost the key to its understanding, which required another generation of initiates to take up the noble task of handing it down.22
Lévi made his ideas known to a broader readership for the irst time in
a series of articles published between 1855 and 1857 in a socialist journal,
19
Strube, Sozialismus, 404–05, 93–501.
Ibid., 505. Unlike his fellows, Lamennais turned his back on Roman Catholicism after his
break with the Holy See and proclaimed a “religion of humanity.” This is a notable contrast
to Constant, who never renounced his Catholic identity.
21
Lévi, Clef, 40–41: “Aussi regardez les prêtres indignes, contemplez ces prétendus serviteurs
de l’autel. Que disent à votre cœur ces hommes gras ou cadavéreux, aux yeux sans regards,
aux lèvres pincées ou béantes ? … Ils prient comme ils dorment et ils sacriient comme ils
mangent. Ce sont des machines à pain, à viande, à vin, et à paroles vides de sens.” Cf. Ibid., 6:
“… dans l’Eglise hiérarchique et divinement autorisée, il n’y a jamais eu et il n’y aura jamais ni
mauvais papes ni mauvais prêtres. Mauvais et prêtre sont deux mots qui ne s’accordent pas.”
Nota bene that Lévi talks about the “true” form of the Church here.
22
This is further complicated by the fact that Lévi had adopted the notion of palingénésie from
the writings of Pierre-Simon Ballanche, which implied that the history of humanity was marked
by a succession of stages where one essentially true and eternal dogma went through a progressive
transformation. Strube, Sozialismus, 131, 98, 357, 80, 449, 99, 507; cf. “Socialist Religion,” 367.
20
46
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
the Revue philosophique et religieuses—notably using his civil name.23 In “The
Kabbalistic Origins of Christianity” he declared that the Kabbalah (or what
he understood under this term) was the core of true Christianity and thus
the carrier of the “universal tradition” that he opposed to the corrupted
doctrine of the established Churches. This separation was initiated by the
burning of the works of Hermes and Pythagoras by Saint Paul—the moment
when “Christianity emancipated itself ” by “lighting the ire of the stake of
his mother.” This negation of the old tradition was necessary to create a
new synthesis “in the name of the original and traditional dogma against the
despotic and ignorant interpretations of the degenerated priesthood.” With his
actions, Paul followed the “paciistic revolutionary” Jesus Christ, a successor
of Osiris, Orpheus, Moses “and all great men of enlightenment.”24 However,
this chain of initiates was irst interrupted when a schism took place between
Paul and John. Lévi clearly took the side of the latter, who was initiated by Jesus
and wrote his Apocalypse in the “hieroglyphic language” handed down to him.
The meaning of this language had been lost by “the oficial Roman Church,”
while the goal of the “Platonic” and “Kabbalistic” doctrine of John, as of all
“true Kabbalists” and “high initiates,” was “the realization of the divine ideal
in humanity.”25 At the same time, Paul, a “free-thinker” eagerly seeking the
emancipation of Christianity, “re-veiled” the dogma and unintentionally paved
the way for “Catholic absolutism.”26 The consequences were disastrous, as the
followers of the Church were now misled: “From the burning of books they
came to the burning of their authors.”
In the meanwhile, the true Christianity, the Kabbalistic Christianity of Saint
John, has always existed and it has always protested; but it was attacked with the
most hateful calumny and confused by the oficial asceticism, under the name of
Gnosticism, with all the delirium of depraved minds: so the Christians of Saint
John concealed themselves and adopted a series of signs taken from the Kabbalah
to recognize each other. So began the occult initiations which attracted the whole
Order of the Temple to the light, by revealing to it its veritable destination.27
The articles were later used in La clef des grands mystères (1861).
Alphonse-Louis Constant, “Des origines cabalistiques du christianisme,” in La revue
philosophique et religieuse (Paris: Bureaux de la Revue, 1855), 35, 40–41. Here, the concept of
Palingenesis is essential for an understanding of the narrative.
25
Ibid., 35–39.
26
Ibid., 41–42. In French, Lévi made a pun playing with the words révélateur (revelator) and
révoilateur (“re-veilator”).
27
Ibid., 42.
23
24
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
47
Thus the Templars became the torchbearers of the secret tradition of true
Christianity, the “champions of humanity” who strived for the establishment
of the association universelle—a prominent socialist concept that had been
essential for Lévi’s radical writings since 1841.28 In another article about
“The Classics of the Kabbalah,” he emphasized that the true meaning of the
Temple was “a social utopia and a symbol for the perfect government, based
on an egalitarian hierarchy of intelligence and merit.”29 The adversaries of this
revolutionary project were “the so-called orthodox sectarians who obstinately
deny progress” and “claim authorities that they do not understand”: “The
ecclesiastical hierarchy is only temporary and must end when the time of the
virility of humanity has come, the age of force and reason” which will bring
“the second coming of Christ,” the explanation of all symbolical igures, and
the erection of the Temple.30 Then the universal religion will inally be realized:
But this puriied religion will not be invented, it exists and it has always existed in
humanity; but it had to be concealed by the sages, because the vulgar have been
incapable of comprehending it. It is the tradition of all the great sanctuaries of antiquity, it is the philosophy of nature, it is God living in humanity and in the world,
it is being demonstrated by being, it is reason proven by harmony, it is the analogy
of the contraries, it is faith based on science and science elevated by faith.31
The reformist tenor of this rhetoric illustrates that Lévi had not at all
abandoned his socialist thought. Given the fact that he had been imprisoned
for political reasons in 1855 for the third time in his life, and that he had faced
the harsh anti-socialist restrictions of the new government since the Coup of
1851, he exercised much caution in Dogme et rituel and the Histoire de la magie but
apparently felt safe enough to employ a more radical language in the socialist
Revue.32 Despite the lack of open calls for the revolutionary establishment of
a socialist utopia, the narrative in the monographs was more or less the same:
The “great Kabbalist John” had been initiated into the secret doctrine by his
master Jesus and communicated it in his Apocalypse, “the key to Christian
28
Ibid., 42–43. Cf. Strube, “Socialist Religion,” 366–67.
Alphonse-Louis Constant, “Les classiques de la Kabbale. Second article. Les Talmudistes
et le Talmud,” in La revue philosophique et religieuse (Paris: Bureaux de la Revue, 1856), 393. This
is a typical Saint-Simonian notion.
30
“Origines,” 43–44; “Classiques,” 393.
31
“Origines,” 45.
32
After a general amnesty, Lévi resumed to frank radicalism, beginning in La clef des grands
mystères (1861). See Strube, “Socialist Religion,” 378–79; cf. Sozialismus, 565–77.
29
48
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
Kabbalah.”33 Lévi put an even stronger emphasis on the Kabbalah as the
essence of the primitive revelation. He also elaborated his narrative about the
consequences of the “emancipation” of Christianity and the founding of an
ésotérisme chrétien:34 “The ones to be initiated did not ind initiators anymore, and
in the long run the directors of consciences became as ignorant as the vulgar…:
the path to light was lost.”35 As a consequence, the “profane” could “erect altar
against altar” and cause countless schisms.36 Within the Church, the last remnants
of the Kabbalistic traditions were lost until the ninth century.37
Against this background, it is highly signiicant that Lévi presented the
Templars as the advocates of johannisme.38 But he was far from hailing them as
the infallible guardians of true Christianity. He maintained that “the johannisme
of the adepts was the Kabbalah of the Gnostics, which soon degenerated into
a mystical pantheism amounting to the idolatry of nature and the hatred of all
revealed dogma.” Having lost the true meaning of the dogma and deceived by
hubris, some of them even came to acknowledge “the pantheistic symbolism”
of black magic and worshiped the “monstrous idol of Baphomet.”39 Once
more, the chain of initiates had been interrupted because of human error, but
Lévi suggested that their teachings lived on in the maçonnerie occulte, while the
Templars themselves, or their remnants, turned into “anarchistic” assassins.40 The
central idea behind this complex and ambivalent tangle of groups, currents, and
individuals is relatively simple: by declaring that literally everybody had, at some
point, lost the key to an understanding of the true tradition, Lévi could position
himself as the one who had rediscovered it. He was the one who could sort out
all the “truths and errors” that had resulted from the upheavals in late antiquity.41
Freemasonry
In order to understand the construction of Lévi’s tradition, it must irst be
33
Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 1, 145, 98, cf. Ibid., 2: 67; Histoire, 105.
Histoire, 212, 126–27.
35
Dogme et rituel, 1, 114; cf. Histoire, 5.
36
Histoire, 152.
37
Ibid., 222. Earlier, Lévi stressed that the “war against magic” had been necessary to battle
“the false Gnostics”—keeping in mind that “the true science of the mages is essentially
Catholic” (ibid., 33).
38
Ibid., 277, with the following differentiation: “Les templiers avaient deux doctrines, une
cachée et réservée aux maîtres, c’était celle du johannisme; l’autre publique, c’était la doctrine
catholique-romaine.”
39
Ibid., 278.
40
Ibid., 280; cf. Clef, 219–20.
41
Histoire, 207.
34
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
49
investigated which sources he used. To begin with, any contemporary learning
about the Knights Templar inevitably would have consulted literature about
Freemasonry. The controversial rise and great success of neo-Templarism in
the eighteenth century sparked a myriad of writings discussing the relationship
between Freemasonry and the historical Templars, often in a highly polemical
way.42 The literature about Freemasons, Templars, conspiracy theories, and
related topics is so vast in the irst half of the nineteenth century that, again,
it would be futile to determine a ixed set of sources. However, the grouping
of certain names and the presentation of certain genealogies clearly show that
Lévi relied on recent debates about the (Neo-)Templars and their historical
origins. In 1818, the Austrian Orientalist Joseph von Hammer-Purgstall (1774–
1856) had published a Latin piece in the Mines de l’Orient, called “Mysterium
Baphometis revelatum, seu fratres militiae templi, qua Gnostici et quidem
Ophiani apostasiae, idoloduliae et impuritatis convicti per ipsa eorum
monumenta.” Therein he maintained that the Templars were Gnostics and that
they worshipped the Gnostic idol of the Baphomet, thus following a doctrine
that he also related to the “Cabala.”43 The study received some attention in
France, where it was reviewed in the Annales de philosophie chrétienne in 1832,44 a
journal with Neo-Catholic background.45 Hammer-Purgstall’s accusation that
The most extensive study of this is still René Le Forestier, La franc-maçonnerie templière et
occultiste aux XVIIIe et XIXe siècles (Paris/Louvain: Aubier-Montaigne/Editions Nauwelaerts,
1970); cf. Pierre Mollier, “Freemasonry and Templarism,” in Handbook of Freemasonry, ed.
Henrik Bogdan and Jan A. M. Snoek (London/Boston: Brill, 2014). For a discussion of the
contexts that are most relevant for the present argument, see Julian Strube, “Revolution,
Illuminismus und Theosophie. Eine Genealogie der ‘häretischen’ Historiographie des frühen
französischen Sozialismus und Kommunismus,” Historische Zeitschrift (forthcoming).
43
Joseph von Hammer-Purgstall, “Mysterium baphometis revelatum, seu fratres militiae
templi, qua Gnostici et quidem Ophiani apostasiae, idoloduliae et impuritatis convicti per ipsa
eorum monumenta,” in Mines de l‘Orient (Vienna: Antoine Schmid, 1818), 2. He was convinced
that the name Baphomet came from βαφη μητεος, which he translated as “tinctura (seu baptisma) Metis,” i.e. “Baptism of Knowledge.” Referring to inscriptions that served as his archaeological evidence, he concluded: “Huic baptismati spirituali et tincturae igneae inserviebant crateres
ad pedes idolorum nostrorum exsculpti, et igne repleti, ita ut palam iat, quomodo ritus ille
mysticus administraretur.” See ibid., 16–17. It should be noted that βαφη (washing) was not
the term usually applied to denote baptism. However, it was used in alchemical contexts, where
the meaning was often symbolically conlated with the act of baptizing. This is why, quite correctly, Hammer-Purgstall chose the translation tinctura. Many thanks for this information are
due to Dylan Burns.
44
Annales de philosophie chrétienne, 2nd ed., vol. 4, (Paris: Au Bureau des Annales de la
Philosophie Chrétienne, 1835), 317–319.
45
Lévi certainly knew the journal and referred to it in Constant, Dictionnaire, 899. References
42
50
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
the historical Knights Templar were worshipping a pagan “idol” in the form
of a head had been described by various sources throughout the centuries, but
the explosive nature of the notion of the Baphomet can only be understood
in light of the more recent quarrels about Neo-Templarism.
The old accusations gained fresh interest when Masonic Neo-Templarism
was established in the eighteenth century and, due to its outstanding success,
caused much controversy. The Masonic Templar legend was most famously
outlined in a writing published in Strasbourg in 1760, which claimed that the
prosecuted Templars had led to Scotland and founded the “Scottish Rite.”46
This legend was taken up by Karl Gotthelf von Hund (1722–1776) for his
Rectiied Scottish Rite and, after 1764, his Rite of Strict Observance.47 In what
followed, multiple Masonic systems focusing on the Templar legend emerged,
especially in Germany, including Johann August von Starck’s (1741–1816)
Templar Clerics who like other Neo-Templars claimed to represent a chain
of initiates that reached back to late antiquity.48 In France, this genealogy was
controversially discussed in the 1770s, most notably by the Martinist Ordre des
Elus Coëns whose lodge in Lyon, under Jean-Baptiste Willermoz (1730–1824),
joined the Strict Observance. However, Willermoz soon turned his back to the
Strict Observance and prepared, during the “Convent des Gaules” in 1778,
the foundation of his Régime Ecossais Rectiié.49 One of the outcomes of
those efforts was the foundation of the Chevaliers Bienfaisants de la Cité
Sainte, which soon became a major voice in Masonic circles.50 The Templar
legend would be an ongoing subject of Masonic quarrels in the early 1780s.51
Apart from these disputes, the “mystically” oriented lodges clashed with their
skeptical counterparts at the important Convent of Wilhelmsbad in 1782. The
success of the “mystics” spawned a whole genre of literature denouncing the
historical accuracy of the Templar legend and attacking the Neo-Templars in
to Hammer-Purgstall were so widespread that he most likely encountered them elsewhere.
46
Le Forestier, Franc-maçonnerie, 68–70, cf. Gustav Adolf Schiffmann, Die Entstehung der
Rittergrade in der Freimaureri um die Mitte des 18. Jahrhunderts (Leipzig: Bruno zechel, 1882),
178–90 and Pierre Mollier, La chevalerie maçonnique. Franc-maçonnerie, imaginaire chevaleresque et
légende templière au siècle des Lumières (Paris: Editions Dervy, 2005), 59–120.
47
Le Forestier, Franc-maçonnerie, 103–221.
48
Ibid., 152–97.
49
Ibid., 476–97; Alice Joly, Un mystique lyonnais et les secrets de la Franc-Maçonnerie, 1730–1824
(Mâcon: Protat Frères, 1938), 105–20.
50
Le Forestier, Franc-maçonnerie, 498–531. The Chevaliers joined the Grand Orient de France
but maintained an afiliation with the Strict Observance, which was now led by Ferdinand von
Braunschweig (1721–1792) and Karl von Hessen (1744–1836).
51
Mollier, Chevalerie, 126.
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
51
the name of rationality and Enlightenment.52 One of the most vocal critics
was the publisher and writer Friedrich Nicolai (1733–1811), who questioned
the authenticity of the Templar legend and the role of the historical Knights
Templar.53 In his Versuch über die Beschuldigungen welche dem Tempelherrenorden
gemacht worden, und über dessen Geheimniß of 1782, which was used by HammerPurgstall as a reference,54 Nicolai argued against the identiication of the
mysterious baffometus or Baphomet and “Mahomet,” which implied that the
Knights Templar had secretly been converted to Islam and were worshipping a
kind of “Muslim idol.”55 Instead, he was convinced of the “Gnostic” beliefs of
the Knights Templar.56 Speaking of a “kabbalistisch-gnostische Philosophie,”
he explained that Gnosticism had emerged from Kabbalah and represented
an erroneous heretical strand that was taken up by the Templars.57 In France,
these polemics were adopted in several conspiracy theories, most prominently
by the anti-Masonic Jesuit Augustin Barruel (1741–1820) in his Mémoires pour
servir a l’histoire du jacobinisme, from 1797. Barruel maintained that the French
Revolution had been the outcome of a Masonic complot, whose ideology he
traced back to the “Kabbalistic Freemasons,” the Templars, the Cathars, the
Gnostics, and eventually the Manicheans.58
This is only a glimpse into a highly diverse and complex genre of
literature, which serves to illustrate how certain historical narratives and
chains of equivalences sedimented at the end of the eighteenth century. In
early nineteenth-century France, they stimulated a wave of Masonic literature
that tried to discuss the history of Freemasonry in a positive, self-referential
light. These works include Marcello Reghellini’s La Maçonnerie considérée comme
Ludwig Hammermayer, Der Wilhelmsbader Freimaurer-Konvent von 1782. Ein Höhe- und
Wendepunkt in der Geschichte der deutschen und europäischen Geheimgesellschaften (Heidelberg: Lambert
Schneider, 1980), esp. 37–43; Le Forestier, Franc-maçonnerie, 533–706; Joly, Mystique, 147–214.
53
Ludwig Hammermayer, “Illuminaten in Bayern. zur Geschichte, Fortwirken und Legende
des Geheimbundes. Entstehung, System, Wirkung (1776/1785/87),“ in Der Illuminatenorden
(1776–1785/87), ed. Helmut Reinalter (Frankfurt am Main et al.: Peter Lang, 1997), 24–28.
This resulted in a controversy with Herder which unfolded between March and June 1782 in
the Teutschen Merkur.
54
Hammer-Purgstall, “Mysterium,” 16.
55
Friedrich Nicolai, Versuch über die Beschuldigungen welche dem Tempelherrenorden gemacht worden,
und über dessen Geheimniß (Berlin/Stettin 1782), esp. 57–90.
56
Ibid., esp. 89–90: “… daß Übereinstimmung der gnostischen Gebräuche mit den Gebräuchen der Tempelherren unwidersprechlich ist …”
57
Ibid., 91, cf. 117–125.
58
Augustin Barruel, Mémoires pour servir a l’histoire du jacobinisme, 4 vols., vol. 2 (London et al.:
L’Imprimerie Françoise et al., 1797), 396–419.
52
52
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
le résultat des religions égyptienne, juive et chrétienne from 1828, where one can read
that “the Baphomet of the Gnostics became the one of the Templars.”59 Or
François-Timoléon Bègue Clavel’s Histoire pittoresque de la franc-maçonnerie et
des sociétés secrètes anciennes et moderne from 1843, which referred to HammerPurgstall’s discussion of the Baphomet.60
With the exception of Barruel’s,61 none of these works were explicitly
cited by Lévi, but it can be assumed that he was familiar with them either
directly or indirectly. There is hard evidence for his fascination with the
topic in a review of Ragon’s Orthodoxie maçonnique, suivie de la maçonnerie occulte
et de l’initiation hermétique (1853), which he wrote for the Revue progressive in
1853. Jean-Marie Ragon de Bettignies (1781–1862) was a highly inluential
Freemason with revolutionary and reformist tendencies.62 It will be recalled
that Lévi had referred to the maçonnerie occulte as the heiress of the Templar
doctrine, and it is highly remarkable that Ragon employed the term occultisme
in his work, a year before Lévi was writing his Dogme—identifying no one else
but Charles Fourier, one of the “fathers” of socialism whose ideas exerted a
decisive inluence on Lévi in the 1840s, as a representative of occultisme.63 It is
quite possible that Lévi became aware of the Baphomet from reading Ragon’s
Orthodoxie maçonnique, although his review contains harsh criticism that reveals
59
Marcello Reghellini, La Maçonnerie considérée comme le résultat des religions égyptienne, juive et
chrétienne, 4 vols., vol. 1 (Bruxelles: H. Tarlier, 1829), 289–90, cf. 444–46.
60
François-Timoléon Bègue Clavel, Histoire pittoresque de la franc-maçonnerie et des sociétés secrètes
anciennes et modernes, 2nd ed. (Paris: Pagnerre, 1843), 355.
61
Alphonse-Louis Constant, “Orthodoxie maçonnique, suivie de la maçonnerie occulte et
de l’initiation hermétique, par J.-M. Ragon,” in Revue progressive (Paris/London/Brüssel: Au
Bureau de la Revue/Barthés et Lowell/M. Périchon, 1853), 131.
62
A comprehensive study of this remarkable personality remains to be written. See, however,
Claude Rétat, “Jean-Marie Ragon. Ou: Qu’est-ce qu’un Maçon Instruit?,” Renaissance Traditionnelle
143/144 (2005); André Combes, Histoire de la franc-maçonnerie au XIXe siècle, 2 vols., vol. 1
(Monaco: Editions du Rocher, 1998), 121–22; Jean-Pierre Laurant, L’ésotérisme chrétien en France
au XIXe siècle (Lausanne: L’Age d’Homme, 1992), 101; Le Forestier, Franc-maçonnerie, 964–65
and Strube, Sozialismus, esp. 445–46. Ragon’s “Trinosophes” became a gathering point for
Freemasons who adhered to the ideals of the French Revolution, including Nicolas Desétanges,
who had participated in the Storming of the Bastille, and Jean-Baptiste Chemin-Dupontès, the
old “pope” of Théophilanthropie. For a while, Ragon was a member of Fabré-Palaprat‘s Ordre
du Temple and “Vicaire primatial” of the Eglise catholique française of the Abbé Châtel.
63
Jean-Marie Ragon, Maçonnerie occulte suivie de l’initiation hermétique (Paris: Dentu, 1853),
170. In the second half of the 1840s, Lévi openly identiied as a Fourierist, wrote for the
leading Fourierist newspaper, La démocratie paciique, and published his book in the Librairie
phalanstérienne, the main Fourierist publisher.
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
53
that he had already developed some opinions of his own.64 It is no surprise
that Lévi criticized Ragon’s anti-Christian attitude and his “materialism,” but
at the same time he lauded the Orthodoxie maçonnique as a “great project” that
attempted to give Freemasonry a coherent dogma in the form of an “occult
philosophy.” However, Lévi regarded the “protestant” Freemasons with
outspoken suspicion and even disdain. He rejected their “puerile rites” and
declared that the “establishment of a new world” would not be achieved “by
simple workers, and certainly not by masons”—a strikingly condescending
remark.65 It is curious that Lévi expressed disappointment that he was not able
to learn more from Ragon about “the ancient initiations and the gatherings
of the middle ages,” as well as about “the traditional goat of the Sabbath, the
Bophomet [sic] of the Templars” and the “philosophical and divine meaning
of these monstrous allegories.”66 This criticism was not entirely fair, as Ragon
did, as a matter of fact, identify the “matter of the alchemists” with, among
others, the Goat of Mendes, Pan, Kabbalistic doctrines, and—perhaps most
notably—with “magnétisme spéciique.”67 This equation is practically identical
to Lévi’s description of the Baphomet, and it is very likely that this is no
coincidence. That being said, it must be noted that Ragon was himself only
reproducing tropes that were omnipresent in Masonic and anti-Masonic
writings, as well as the vast literature they had inspired since the second half
of the eighteenth century.
Works about the occult sciences and magic
Lévi frequently referred to contemporary compendia of the fashionable sciences
occultes, a catch-all phrase for topics such as magic, alchemy, astrology, and so
on.68 Interestingly, Lévi’s initial remarks about the sciences occultes were highly polemical. In 1853, he published a scathing article about “Les prétendues sciences
occultes, ou la folie artiicielle et les manœuvres qui la produisent” in the Revue
64
Constant, “Orthodoxie,” 132–34. Lévi mentioned some works and names that indicate his
reading at the time. He also criticized Ragon, rather vaguely, for knowing nothing about the
Tarot. For a more detailed analysis, see Strube, Sozialismus, 445–50.
65
Constant, “Orthodoxie,” 137. For Lévi’s later relationship with Freemasonry, see Strube,
Sozialismus, 581–82, cf. 482–88.
66
Constant, “Orthodoxie,” 134–35.
67
Ragon, Maçonnerie, 220, 154–55, 95. In another text from 1841, Ragon had written: “Le
maillet est aussi devenu la croix tronquée gnostique ou baphométique.” See Cours philosophique
et interprétatif des initiations anciennes et modernes (Paris: Berlandier, 1841), 175.
68
Wouter J. Hanegraaff, Esotericism and the Academy. Rejected Knowledge in Western Culture
(Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2012), 230–39.
54
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
progressive. Therein he decried them as “intellectual aristocracy, without hierarchy and reason,” as “charlatanism,” and as “scientiic atheism.”69 However, it
becomes clear that he directed his rant against the vogue of the tables tournantes,
which he strongly opposed, as well as against the “street sibyls,” implying that
he believed he had discovered a superior form of magical knowledge that was
contained in the Tarot.70 This suggests that Lévi had started to learn about
magic and the Tarot at that time, a process that cannot be investigated in more
detail at this point.71 But the sources to which he referred enable us to learn
more about his development of the Baphomet motif.
His irst discussion of the sciences occultes can be found in the somewhat
puzzling Dictionnaire de littérature chrétienne from 1851, where he made extensive
use of Ferdinand Denis’ Tableau historique, analytique et critique des sciences occultes
(1830).72 From this popular work he could learn that the Templars, inluenced by
Gnostic ideas, were practicing the sciences occultes and handed down the doctrines
related to them.73 In a similar work, Jacques-Albin-Simon Collin de Plancy’s
Dictionnaire infernal (1844), which was reprinted as Dictionnaire des sciences occultes
(1846) in the same series that contained Lévi’s Dictionnaire, the entry “Goat”
(bouc) discusses its identiication in Egypt with Pan, as well as with Azazel and the
Sabbatical Goat.74 Another “classic” that Lévi worked with was Jules Garinet’s
Histoire de la magie en France (1818), which contains a passage about the trial of
the Templars.75 It appears that Lévi used those compendia from 1851 onwards
to gather knowledge about these topics, which would surface in his articles for
the Revue philosophique et religieuses and eventually in his monographs about magic.
Gnosticism
It has become clear by now that the Templars were commonly regarded as the
successors of the ancient Gnostics. In this light, Lévi’s genealogy of “esoteric
Alphonse-Louis Constant, “Les prétendues sciences occultes, ou la folie artiicielle et les
manœuvres qui la produisent,” in Revue progressive (Paris/London/Brüssel: Au Bureau de la
Revue/Barthés et Lowell/M. Périchon, 1853), 235–37.
70
Ibid., 240–42.
71
See Strube, Sozialismus.
72
For a detailed analysis, see ibid., 394–416.
73
Ferdinand Denis, Tableau historique, analytique et critique des sciences occultes (Paris: Bureau de
l’Encyclopédie portative/Bachelier, 1830), 11, 181–82.
74
Jacques Albin Simon Collin de Plancy, Dictionnaire infernal, 3rd ed. (Paris/Lyon: Paul
Mellier/Guyot, 1844), 97–98. Lévi refers to this work in Dogme et rituel, 2, 232.
75
Jules Garinet, Histoire de la magie en France (Paris: Foulon et Compagnie, 1818), 77–80. This
work is also a source for later occultists, e.g. Guaïta, Clef, 282–85.
69
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
55
Christianity” appears a lot less inventive than it might have at the beginning of
this section. An initial occupation with the history of the Gnostics is tangible
in the Dictionnaire of 1851, where Lévi discussed the environment of the late
antique School of Alexandria. He maintained that the early Christians had
been forced by their pagan adversaries to adopt “a kind of Christian esotericism” (ésotérisme chrétien). At this point, he already laid a strong emphasis on
the Apocalypse of John, to which he referred as “the book of initiation of the
true Gnostics.”76 In his later monographs, he reiterated his conviction that the
Gnostics had been “Christian Kabbalists” following John, but he explained
that early on a current of “false Gnostics” emerged, which was responsible
for the loss of the Kabbalistic keys.77 This corrupted Gnosticism resulted, like
Arianism and Manicheism, from a “misunderstood Kabbalah” and was based
on “materialistic and pantheistic” errors.78 It is signiicant that Lévi referred to
the Dictionnaire des sciences philosophiques (1847) by the respected scholar Adolphe
Franck (1810–1893) for his identiication of Gnosticism and Kabbalah.79 The
respective entry “Kabbale” was Lévi’s irst evident source for the topic of
Kabbalah.80 This is especially interesting because Franck emphasized the translation of Kabbale as tradition—a tradition that included Gnosticism, the School
of Alexandria, “Indian mysticism,” and the theosophy of Jakob Böhme.
Yet, more importantly, Lévi’s Dictionnaire referred to the authority on the
history of Gnosticism, Jacques Matter (1791–1864).81 It is well-known that
Matter appears to have been the irst author to have used the word ésotérisme in
the French language,82 and indeed Lévi employed it in the context of his work.
The Alsatian scholar had published a widely acknowledged Essai historique sur
l’école d’Alexandrie in 1820, which was succeeded in 1828 by a Histoire critique du
gnosticisme. In the second volume of this work, Matter used the term ésotérisme
to characterize the doctrines of the Pythagoreans and the Gnostics.83 In 1840,
76
Constant, Dictionnaire, 83, cf. 635.
Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 1, 148; Histoire, 217.
78
Histoire, 222; cf. 68–70, where the errors of the Gnostics are attributed to the inluence of
“the false Kabbalah of India.”
79
Constant, Dictionnaire, 126.
80
Adolphe Franck, Dictionnaire des sciences philosophiques, vol. 3 (Paris: L. Hachette, 1847),
382–92. Lévi referred to a passage on p. 384. Cf. Wouter J. Hanegraaff, “The Beginnings of
Occultist Kabbalah. Adolphe Franck and Eliphas Lévi,” in Kabbalah and Modernity. Interpretations,
Transformations, Adaptations, ed. Boaz Huss, Marco Pasi, and Kocku von Stuckrad (Leiden: Brill,
2010), 118: Hanegraaff suspected that Lévi might have been familiar with Franck’s scholarship.
81
Constant, Dictionnaire, 878–95.
82
Laurant, Esotérisme, 7–13.
83
Jacques Matter, Histoire critique du gnosticisme et de son inluence sur les sectes religieuses et
77
56
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
a revised and considerably expanded version of the Essai appeared as Histoire
de l’école d’Alexandrie. It contains the thesis that the merging of Christian and
pagan doctrines lay at the root of the new Gnostic school, which propagated
an emanationist doctrine of creation in the Jewish-Platonic tradition of Philo
that was opposed to the Christian creatio ex nihilo—two rival traditions whose
struggle has continued well into the present day.84 Matter was deeply fascinated
by this “mystical” religious tradition. He had evident contacts to the High
Degree Masonry in Strasbourg and sustained contacts with leading Martinists.85
He was married to the daughter of Friedrich Rudolf Salzmann (1749–1821,
also Saltzmann), a friend of Willermoz and Louis-Claude de Saint-Martin.86
Over the years, he published several works about Saint-Martin, Swedenborg
and the history of mysticism. This shows that his interest in the School of
Alexandria was not motivated by mere scholarly curiosity but a determination
to unveil the history of an authentic religious tradition that would provide
the path to the inal religion of the future.87 This idea mirrored contemporary
discourses about the nature of a “true” religion, which would resurface in the
writings of Eliphas Lévi.
Matter often emphasized the “analogy between the Kabbalah and
Gnosticism.” Remarkably, he also did so with regard to the emblems, diagrams
and igures of the Kabbalistic and Gnostic traditions, for which he provided
a separate volume of plates.88 He based these analogies especially on the
Kabbala Denudata, the Sefer Jezirah, and the Zohar—which would soon function
as main sources for Lévi.89 In his Histoire critique du gnosticisme he also expounded
philosophiques des six premiers siècles de l’ère chrétienne, 2 vols., vol. 2 (Paris: F.-G. Levrault, 1828),
83, 489. He maintained that the early Christians had been opposed to the pagan differentiation
between an ésotérique and an exotérique religion, see ibid., 1: 13–14.
84
Histoire, 1, preface and introduction, esp. 29–32, 291–94, 305–11, 52–53. For more details,
see Strube, Sozialismus, 118–21, 398–400 and “Socialism and Esotericism in July Monarchy
France,” History of Religions (forthcoming).
85
Joly, Mystique, 105. Saint-Martin introduced him to the works of Böhme: see Antoine
Faivre, Access to Western Esotericism (Albany: State University of New York Press, 1994), 73. It
has been argued that his understanding of emanation was based on Martines des Pasqually:
Hanegraaff, Esotericism, 335–36.
86
Laurant, Esotérisme, 42; cf. Le Forestier, Franc-maçonnerie, 419f., 516–19, 94f., 651–56,
803–10, 909–12 and Jules Keller, Le théosophe alsacien Frédéric-Rodolphe Saltzmann et les milieux
spirituels de son temps. Contribution à l’étude de l’illuminisme et du mysticisme à la in du XVIIIe et au
début du XIXe siècle, 2 vols., Europäische Hochschulschriften (Bern et al.: Peter Lang, 1985).
87
Strube, Sozialismus, 120–21.
88
Jacques Matter, Histoire critique du gnosticisme: Planches (Paris: F.-G. Levrault, 1828), 7.
89
Histoire, 1, 104. In the same footnote, those traditions are also linked to India, because
“Tout est lié dans l’antique Asie…”
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
57
analogies between the god of Mendes, its emblem of a goat, and the god Pan.90
It is tantalizing to imagine Lévi scanning through the volume of plates provided
by Matter and comparing “Gnostic” and “Kabbalistic” iconographies. What is
for sure is that he was familiar with contemporary debates about the origins of
Christianity and a supposed schism between an “esoteric,” “Gnostic” Christian
current and the established doctrine of the Church.
Socialism
The political character of Lévi’s genealogy has already been discussed at the
outset. It should be recalled that Lévi did not only have a radical socialist past,
but that his ideas from the 1840s formed the basis for the development of
his “occultism” from the 1850s forward. From today’s perspective, it might
appear strange that Lévi’s socialist background should be essential for his
occultist narrative, but a brief look at the historiographies of July Monarchy
socialism will support this point. Literally every French study of socialism
that appeared between the 1830s and early 1850s depicted the socialists as the
heirs of a heretical tradition that included the theosophists of the eighteenth
century, medieval groups such as the Templars and the Cathars, and eventually
the very same protagonists of the School of Alexandria, most notably the
Gnostics, that were discussed above. These studies included Louis Reybaud’s
pioneering Etudes sur les réformateurs contemporains ou socialistes modernes (1840),91
Alfred Sudre’s Histoire du communisme ou Réfutation historique des utopies socialistes
(1848), Adolphe Franck’s Le communisme jugé par l’histoire (1848), and Jean
Joseph Thonissen’s Le socialisme depuis l’antiquité jusqu’à la constitution française du
14 janvier 1852 (1852). Unfortunately, the scope of this paper does not allow
for a discussion of the reasons for these depictions.92 But it must be noted
that these studies, as well as the (self-)perceptions of socialists, were inherently
intertwined with the questions of the authenticity of “true” religion and the
origins of Christianity. In those debates, the School of Alexandria came to
be a focal point, to the degree that Thonissen’s study, for example, almost
identically copied the “ésotérique vs. exotérique” passage from Matter’s Histoire
critique du gnosticisme in order to deine the origins of socialism.93 This conlation
90
Ibid., 2: 12.
Esp. Louis Reybaud, Etudes sur les réformateurs contemporains ou socialistes modernes (Paris:
Guillaumin et Compagnie, 1840), 132–33; cf. “Des idées et des sectes communistes,” in Revue
des deux mondes (Paris: Au Bureau de la Revue des deux mondes, 1842), esp. 12–18.
92
See Strube, “Socialism and Esotericism,” and Sozialismus, 97–147.
93
Compare Jean Joseph Thonissen, Le socialisme depuis l’antiquité jusqu’à la constitution française
du 14 janvier 1852, 2 vols., vol. 1 (Louvain/Paris: Vanlinthout et Compagnie/Sagnier et Bray,
1852), 151, and Matter, Histoire, 1, 13–14.
91
58
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
of revolutionary currents, socialism, Gnosticism, Kabbalah, magic, the sciences
occultes, and related topoi reaches back to the genre of eighteenth-century
historiographies by authors such as Barruel and Nicolai.94
As he was deeply involved in socialist as well as in Romantic circles, where
such narratives were picked up with great enthusiasm, Lévi was certainly familiar with these historiographies. While some of the sources discussed previously
are more relevant for an understanding of the general context of certain
motifs regarding the Templars, the Baphomet, and their supposed Gnostic
origins, these narratives about the history of socialism can be situated in Lévi’s
immediate proximity. This becomes particularly evident from the fact that his
best friend and closest political comrade, Alphonse Esquiros (1812–1876),
published one of the most fascinating versions of a “heretical historiography”
of socialism, the Histoire des Montagnards from 1847.95 At this time, Constant
and Esquiros lived through their most radical phases. They founded, in the
revolutionary year of 1848, one of the most notorious revolutionary clubs,
the Club de la Montagne.96 Adhering “au socialisme le plus radical,” as they
proudly proclaimed,97 they represented the Montagnard faction, which received
their name from their upper ranks in the National Assembly and would today
be referred to as the Extreme Left. Thus, when Esquiros wrote his Histoire,
he attempted to establish the genealogy of his own ideology and that of his
political comrades. According to Esquiros, the superior “science” that was at
the root of political radicalism originated with Jesus Christ (the irst revolutionary) and was handed down in the form of the sciences occultes: “astrology,
alchemy, magic,” which “concealed the opposition of the human spirit during
the centuries of darkness: especially the religious opposition, followed by the
opposition against monarchy.”98 The book of the Kabbalists, Esquiros went
on, had to be written in an encrypted language to avoid prosecution by the
authorities. Although the medieval magicians were not usually reformers in
the modern sense, they were dissidents whose practices betrayed a hatred of
the established powers.99 The French Revolution was an “explosion” of those
94
Strube, “Revolution, Illuminismus und Theosophie.”
Sozialismus, 408–11. For more details about Esquiros, see Jacques P. van den Linden,
Alphonse Esquiros. De la bohème romantique à la république sociale (Heerlen/Paris: Winants/Nizet,
1948) and Anthony zielonka, Alphonse Esquiros (1812–1876): A Study of his Works (Paris/
Genève: Champion/Slatkine, 1985).
96
Strube, Sozialismus, 370–75.
97
Le Tribun du Peuple, no. 3, March 23, 1848.
98
Alphonse Esquiros, Histoire des Montagnards (Paris: Victor Lecou, 1847), 26–27.
99
Ibid., 28–29.
95
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
59
tendencies, which had passed on from the Kabbalah to the Freemasons, and
from there to the revolutionary clubs.100 This fascinating genealogy is the one
which was closest to Lévi, but it was just one among a number of others.
These genealogies could also be found in the Socialist-Romantic literature that Lévi had been highly enthusiastic about since the late 1830s, most
prominently George Sand’s Spiridion (1839), whose reading he described in
1841 as a life-altering experience.101 It is no wonder then, that his notorious
Bible de la liberté from 1841, which earned him a prison sentence and a hefty
ine, did relect “traditionalist” ideas that are almost identical to his later occultist narrative. For example, he described a tradition reaching from Moses,
Enoch, Hermes, Orpheus, Socrates, Pythagoras, and Plato, among others, to
Jesus Christ and inally to the revolutionary heretics who succeeded him.102 He
expounded the thesis of a primitive and universal revelation that proved the
identity of the Abrahamic, Greco-Roman, and Indian religions, which would
soon be joined in universal unity.103 In his Doctrines religieuses et sociales from 1841,
he stressed that the Bible was written in “igures,” “symbols,” and “images.”
It could only be decrypted with the key of the Apocalypse of John, which
contained the “eternal revelation” and “the gospel in all its purity.”104 Written
at a time when Christianity had been outlawed, it could only be understood
by élus, chosen ones.105 Using a socialist, Saint-Simonian terminology, Lévi
maintained that hommes d’élite—inspired or holy men; prophets—had communicated divine truths to generations of seekers who wrote them down in books
“which are venerated by the vulgar without comprehending them,” especially
100
Ibid., 37–39. It may be noted that a later edition of the Histoire, from 1875, did not contain
any relativizing and critical remarks about magicians, Freemasons, etc., but depicted them in a
very enthusiastic light. Also, the Kabbalah receives signiicantly more attention. At one point,
it is even referred to as a “Counter-Church”: “Elle [la science] se it société secrète et prit le
nom de cabale. La cabale était une contre-Eglise” (Histoire des Montagnards, Œuvres d’Alphonse
Esquiros (Paris: Librairie de la Renaissance, 1875), 18).
101
Alphonse-Louis Constant, L’Assomption de la femme ou Le livre de l’amour (Paris: La Gallois,
1841), XIX. In this passage, Lévi also referred to his reading of “the ancient Gnostics.” For
Lévi’s reception of the Spiridion and its content, see Strube, Sozialismus, 223–27. For a similar
account by Gérard de Nerval, a fellow romantique from Lévi’s milieu, see ibid., 411–14.
102
Alphonse-Louis Constant, La Bible de la Liberté (Paris: Le Gallois, 1841), 88.
103
Ibid., 93. The passage contains several names that would be central to the later occultist
writings, such as the Indian “Trimourti.”
104
Doctrines religieuses et sociales (Paris: Le Gallois, 1841), 65–66.
105
Ibid., 60. In contemporary times it was particularly the poet who could decipher it, as Jesus
had been a poet himself, and the Apocalypse a poem: ibid., 66; cf. Bible, 77–81.
60
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
the Apocalypse of John.106 This demonstrates that Lévi had articulated his
idea of a tradition of true divine knowledge that was only understandable for
“initiates” as early as his very irst radical writings. After further developing
this idea during the 1840s, most notably in his Livre des larmes of 1845 and his
Testament de la liberté of 1848, it was only a relatively small step to the occultist
narrative outlined in the beginning of this section.
In contrast to his friends, in the 1840s Lévi’s writings do not reveal any
concern for the occult sciences, magic, or Kabbalah. Lévi only took active
interest in those matters after 1848. However, his radical socialist writings do
contain a number of ideas that would later resurface in his occultist oeuvre,
most speciically in the concept of the Baphomet. Perhaps most fundamental
among these were his concept of “universal harmony”—a socialist association
universelle—and the notion of a science universelle that he believed to have found in
the teachings of Lamennais, Swedenborg, and Fourier.107 This science universelle
preconigured much of his later concept of “magic.” His Fourierist understanding of “harmony” and the equilibrium necessary to establish it would be
of central importance to his Baphomet. The language of harmony, analogies,
and correspondences was commonplace not only in Fourierist parlance, but
also in the socialism-infused Romanticism of Lévi’s fellow petits romantiques.108
Other topics essential to the radical socialist writings were the igure of
Lucifer and the notion of the redemption of Satan, which were widely popular
in Romantic circles during the 1830s and 1840s.109 Artists such as Balzac, Hugo,
Lamartine, Michelet, Alexandre Soumet, and George Sand wrote about Lucifer
and Satan as revolutionary and tragic igures, symbolizing the human quest for
freedom and redemption.110 Lévi was personally acquainted with some of these
Doctrines, 10–11. See also La mère de Dieu. Epopée religieuse et humanitaire (Paris: Charles
Gosselin, 1844), esp. 190–91 and Le Livre des Larmes ou Le Christ Consolateur. Essai de conciliation
entre l’Église catholique et la philosophie moderne (Paris: Paulier, 1845), 193–94: “Dès mon adolescence
je lisais l’Apocalypse avec une avidité presque fébrile.”
107
Strube, Sozialismus, 316–51.
108
Lévi’s role as a petit romantique was especially highlighted by Frank Paul Bowman, Eliphas
Lévi, visionnaire romantique (Paris: Presses Universitaires de France, 1969), 5–60.
109
Per Faxneld, Satanic Feminism: Lucifer as the Liberator of Woman in Nineteenth-Century Culture
(Stockholm: Molin & Sorgenfrei, 2014), 113–60; Luijk, “Satan,” 83–173.
110
Max Milner, Le diable dans la littérature française, de Cozotte à Baudelaire, 1772–1861, 2 vols.,
vol. 1 (Paris: J. Corti, 1960), 164–72, 516–622; ibid., 2: 117–56, 358–422; Léon Cellier, L’épopée
romantique (Paris: Presses Universitaires de France, 1954), 221–45; Ursula Müller, “Die Gestalt
Lucifers in der Dichtung vom Barock bis zur Romantik” (Dissertation, Universität Gießen,
1940), 53–69; Frank Paul Bowman, Le Christ des barricades (Paris: Editions du Cerf, 1987), 266;
Faxneld, Satanic Feminism, 137–38; Luijk, “Satan,” 140–42.
106
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
61
authors, including other romantiques such as Théophile Gautier and Gérard de
Nerval, who were friends and collaborators of Esquiros.111 It does not come as
a surprise, then, that he was highly enthusiastic about their works and deeply
inluenced by them.112 In his Bible de la liberté, he described Lucifer as the “angel
of liberty” who stood for the emancipation of human “intelligence.” Only
“centuries of ignorance” had falsely turned him into the “prince of demons.”
Far from being an evil entity, he would eventually be rehabilitated and uniied
with God through his revolutionary striving for freedom and science.113 This
understanding of Lucifer appears almost identically in Lévi’s occultist writings, where he quoted extensively from his publications from the 1840s, most
notably the Bible and the Testament. As will be seen in section 4, this was not
only decisive for the creation of his Baphomet, but it would also be central to
his polemics against Catholic writers.
It will be recalled that Lévi’s attitude towards “pantheism” was very
negative. His description of the Baphomet as a “pantheistic igure” and a
“Panthée” calls for clariication. In his irst socialist writings, Lévi openly
identiied as a “pantheist.”114 This does not come as a surprise, as “pantheism”
was a term widely used to decry recent philosophical and religious tendencies,
including the contemporary socialist currents to which Lévi adhered. Henry
Maret (1837–1881), for example, a former disciple of Lamennais and one of
the most distinguished Catholic apologists, saw the socialist school of the
Saint-Simonians as the successors of a tradition that had originated in India
before spreading to Egypt and Chaldea and then manifesting in the Greek
Mysteries, the doctrine of Pythagoras, and the School of Alexandria with its
Gnostic and Neoplatonist protagonists. From there, it started a tradition of
erroneous “mysticism” that had recently manifested in eighteenth-century
philosophy, most importantly German Idealism, and inally in contemporary
socialist currents.115 In light of Lévi’s later writings, it is also noteworthy that
the Kabbalah featured as an example of “pantheism” in contemporary debates,
which Lévi was certainly aware of.116 Apart from this (Neo-)Catholic context,
111
For Gautier’s treatment of Satan, see Milner, Diable, 2, 173–77; cf. Ibid., 1: 522–31. For
Nerval, see ibid., 2: 274–309; cf. Ibid., 1: 583–94.
112
Strube, Sozialismus, 236–39; cf. Luijk, “Satan,” 154.
113
Constant, Bible, 17–19. Cf. Milner, Diable, 2, 249–51, where the parallels to Lamennais and
Sand are highlighted. Also see the striking passage in Constant, Mère, 265.
114
E.g., Assomption, XI.
115
Henry Maret, Essai sur le panthéisme dans les sociétés modernes (Paris: Sapia, 1840), 97–111.
116
This is especially the controversy between Paul Drach (1791–1865) and Adolphe Franck.
See François Laplanche, La Bible en France entre mythe et critique, XVIe–XIXe siècle (Paris: Albin
62
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
the publications of Lévi most notably relected the Romantic tendencies of
July Monarchy socialism, which led critics to identify the socialist reformers
as “modern pantheists.” Indeed, one of his most impressive works from this
period, La Mère de Dieu (1844), is profoundly marked by a mystical pantheism.117
In his Livre des larmes of 1845, however, Lévi had turned to a Catholic
traditionalism and rationalism propagated by Joseph de Maistre.118 He came
to denounce pantheism as erroneous and emphasized the need for Catholic
authority and hierarchy.119 This stance would harden in the following years.
Most likely very aware of his “pantheistic” past, he did not merely abandon his
old beliefs. As in so many other respects, he was convinced that he had come
to understand their “true” meaning, regarding himself as superior to others, be
they rival socialists or Catholics, in his quest to establish “true” socialism and
“true” Catholicism. This explains the ambiguousness of his language about
“pantheism.” It has to be seen within the changing dialectic between “true” and
“false” doctrines that determined his historical narrative from the 1840s on.
One of the most striking aspects of the Baphomet is its androgynous
form. Indeed, androgyny is one of the most central themes in Lévi’s writings
from the 1840s. In his Bible, as well as another publication from 1841 entitled
L’assomption de la femme, Lévi envisioned the redemption of humankind and
establishment of the association universelle after the second coming of Christ,
the rehabilitation of Lucifer, and the emancipation of woman. He regarded
the emancipation of woman as a prerequisite for the progress of society—a
widespread notion in socialist circles—but she was also the one who, in the
personiication of Mary, redeemed humanity by her Christ-like suffering and
would eventually rehabilitate Lucifer, heralding the inal universal synthesis.120
Michel, 1994), 124–25, and Strube, Sozialismus, 404–05. Gougenot des Mousseaux, who was
known for his notoriously anti-Semitic stance, leveled similar accusations against the Kabbalah.
117
See esp. Constant, Mère, 273, 360. Cf. Paul Bénichou, Romantismes français, 2 vols., vol. 1
(Paris: Gallimard, 2004), 865–66. Léon Cellier viewed this work as one of the most remarkable products of the period, see his Epopée romantique, 209–20.
118
Strube, Sozialismus, 308–15.
119
This was no renunciation of his socialist ideas, as the reception of de Maistre, including
his notion of hierarchy and authority, had been central to the development of French socialism, especially Saint-Simonism and later Fourierist variants. See “Socialist Religion,” 367–68;
“Neues Christentum,” 148–49.
120
Lévi equaled the suffering of suppressed women to that of Christ, a notion that he probably adopted from his friend Esquiros. For a study of July Monarchy socialist feminism, including the “Abbé Constant” as an example, see Naomi Judith Andrews, Socialism’s Muse: Gender in
the Intellectual Landscape of French Romantic Socialism (Lanham: Lexington Books, 2006) and “’La
Mère Humanité’: Femininity in the Romantic Socialism of Pierre Leroux and the Abbé A.-L.
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
63
Quite remarkably, this synthesis would bring forth a union not only of humanity and God but also of man and woman: “The two sexes will be one, according
to the word of Christ; the great androgyne will be created, humanity will be
woman and man.”121 In Mère, Lévi described a “new Earth” in the form of
the “universal Church”: “This is the palace of the husband and the wife; here
lives pure and celestial love; here exists no distinction between the ranks and
the sexes anymore: God alone is all in all.”122 Although androgyny used to be a
typical motif in Romantic literature, and although some of the ideas expressed
by Lévi can be traced back directly to his friend and mentor Simon Ganneau—
an eccentric socialist known as the “Mapah”123—the eclectic vision formulated
in his 1840s writings stands out as one of the most remarkable products of
Romantic socialism. Given the prominence of androgyny in this vision, it is no
surprise that the Baphomet, whom Lévi referred to as “the great androgyne,”
represents a fusion of the sexes. It has to be seen as a symbol of the realization
of the inal universal synthesis, which had been Lévi’s ultimate goal since he
began to publish his radical ideas as the notorious Abbé Constant.
The political dimension of these ideas can hardly be overestimated. It did
not disappear in Lévi’s occultist writings. More prominently than ever before, he
began to propagate his idea of an élite of initiates that was supposed to lead humanity to emancipation. He had already intensiied this notion in his Testament de
la liberté, but the disastrous aftermath of the February Revolution of 1848, which
brought forth the irreversible demise of July Monarchy socialism, robbed him of
his belief in the ability of “the masses” to emancipate themselves.124 However,
he did not break with his former beliefs but modiied them. Echoing his earlier
writings, Lévi wrote in La clef des grands mystères that the hommes d’élite would be
responsible for the administration of “the interests and goods of the universal
family. Then, according to the promise of the Gospel, there will only be one
lock and one shepherd [i.e., God].”125 He repeatedly differentiated between the
“chosen ones” and the “masses,” but emphasized that it was the destiny of man
to “create oneself ” and gain freedom from enslavement.126 It was the task of the
people to “initiate themselves,” and as soon as their leaders would become wise,
“the paths to emancipation will be open for everyone, to personal, successive,
Constant,” Journal of the History of Ideas 63, no. 4 (2002).
121
Constant, Assomption, 78–79.
122
Mère, 279.
123
Strube, Sozialismus, 256–68.
124
Socialist Religion,” 369–70, 78; cf. Sozialismus, 512–22.
125
Lévi, Clef, 64.
126
Dogme et rituel, 2, 140f., Histoire, 47f., Clef, 20, 290.
64
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
progressive emancipation, by which all those following their vocation will be
able, through their efforts, to achieve the rank of the chosen ones.”127 This is
the fundamental idea behind Lévi’s occultism. Its core elements are represented
by the Baphomet. This is nowhere more obvious than in the last lines of the
chapter “Le Baphomet” in the posthumous Livre des splendeurs. In a dramatic
conclusion, Lévi heralded the establishment of the inal universal religion on
Earth in an enthusiastic socialist tenor: “The association of all interests, / The
federation of all people, / The alliance of all cults, / And universal solidarity.”128
4. Polemics against Catholics and Spiritists
The historical narrative underlying Lévi’s Baphomet has now been discussed,
and it has been shown which main sources he used to develop it. A comprehensive understanding of its meaning, however, requires a closer look at the 1850s,
when Lévi engaged in polemics with different opponents in order to defend his
magical doctrine and distance himself from others. It has already been indicated
that he was part of a generation of disillusioned socialists who were excited by
the vogue of the tables tournantes in 1853, which eventually led to the emergence
of the French Spiritist movement.129 Unlike many other socialists, he took a decidedly hostile stance towards the new phenomena, as his condescending article
about the “folly” of the “prétendues sciences occultes” has illustrated. His sense
of superiority can be understood against two backgrounds: irst, he had gathered his knowledge about the workings of magic in a speciic context which can
be referred to as “spiritualistic magnetism”; second, as a “true” Catholic he was
much less concerned about his magnetistic or Spiritist opponents than about
prominent Catholic writers who occupied themselves with spirit phenomena.
Magnetism and Spiritism
Lévi’s notion of the Astral Light (lumière astrale) is perhaps the best-known
aspect of his magical theory. Early recipients, such as Blavatsky, were mainly
interested in this concept, and, as noted above, the Baphomet is in several
ways an embodiment of the Astral Light. Contrary to occultist perspectives
on the Astral Light, and contrary to recent scholarship, it must be stressed that
127
Histoire, 558.
Le livre des splendeurs, contenant le soleil judaïque, la gloire chrétienne et l’étoile lamboyante, études sur
les origines de la cabale, avec des recherches sur les mystères de la francmaçonnerie, suivies de la profession de
foi et des éléments de cabale (Paris: Chamuel, 1894), 113.
129
Strube, “Socialist Religion,” 373–74.
128
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
65
Lévi did not rely on ancient, medieval, or even early modern sources when
he developed this theory.130 He pointed out himself that he had borrowed the
notion from “the school of Pasqualis Martinez,” i.e. Martinism.131 However,
his actual sources came not from the late eighteenth century but from the
1850s. Most likely, he discovered the notion in a publication from 1852, La
magie devoilée by Jean Du Potet de Sennevoy (1796–1881), which Lévi explicitly
named as a source.132 He agreed with Du Potet’s conviction that the Astral
Light denoted an agent magique that had been known to the Kabbalists, the
Chaldean mages, the alchemists, and the Gnostics.133 As a médiateur plastique,
it was the force behind magnetism and consequently the ultimate cause of
magical operations.134 Lévi took great pains to distinguish this theory from
other magnetistic approaches, and especially from somnambulism—hence
his ongoing polemics against “dabblers.” In his view, the true practitioner of
magic needed two fundamental qualiications: irst, a natural disposition and
individual training of the “will,” and second, an “initiation.”
Although the Astral Light was a “blind mechanism” that worked
“mathematically” and followed immutable laws,135 it was the will (volonté) of
the magician that was needed to control it, and the exercise of this will required
130
See Bernd-Christian Otto, Magie. Rezeptions- und diskursgeschichtliche Analysen von der Antike bis
zur Neuzeit (Berlin: De Gruyter, 2011), 520–21, where the Astral Light is traced from Agrippa and
Paracelsus to Ficino; cf. “A (Catholic) ‘Magician’ Historicizes ‘Magic’: Eliphas Lévi’s Histoire de
la Magie,” in History and Religion: Writing a Religious Past, ed. Bernd-Christian Otto, Susanne Rau,
and Jörg Rüpke (Berlin: De Gruyter), 436.
131
Lévi, Clef, 217.
132
Dogme et rituel, 2, 75. The work contained a passage from the Philosophie divine by the Martinist
Jean-Philippe Dutoit-Membrini (1721–1792), which was copied by Lévi and put in the very
same context. Cf. Jules Du Potet de Sevennoy, La magie dévoilée ou principes de science occulte (Paris:
Pommeret et Moreau, 1852), 137 and Jean-Philippe Dutoit-Membrini, La philosophie divine
appliquée aux lumières naturelle, magique, astrale, surnaturelle, céleste et divine, vol. 1 (n.p., 1793), 35–36:
“Cet esprit astral, ou feu ou lumière astrale, qui est le plus haut degré de la lumière des esprits,
est supérieur toutefois à ce qu’on appelle l’esprit de la nature; et il en fait la force, les vertus
et les rapports.” For more about Dutoit-Membrini, see Auguste Viatte, Les sources occultes du
romantisme. Illuminisme, Théosophie 1770–1820, 2 vols., vol. 1 (Paris: Champion, 1928), 116–19.
Also see Baier, Meditation, 1, 267–70, who recognized Du Potet’s importance to Lévi’s magical
theory.
133
Lévi, Clef, 217–18; Dogme et rituel, 1, 205. Cf. Ibid., 2: 48: “Scientiiquement on peut
apprécier les diverses manifestations du mouvement universel par les phénomènes électriques
ou magnétiques. Que les physiciens cherchent et découvrent : les cabalistes expliqueront les
découvertes de la science.”
134
Clef, 113–14.
135
Dogme et rituel, 1, 185; Histoire, 18–19.
66
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
intensive schooling.136 This had been a common notion in magnetistic theories since
the pioneering works of Puységur, and it is no surprise that Lévi came to adopt
it. It is noteworthy, however, that he had already come into contact with it in the
1840s and maybe even the 1830s. Discussions of magnetism were omnipresent
in the Romantic literature that he had devoured, for example in the works of
Lamartine, Gautier, Nerval, Sand or Hugo. In his Rituel, he explicitly referred to
Sand’s Spiridion in the context of magnetism.137 A look into the works of Balzac, to
which Lévi referred enthusiastically throughout his lifetime, is very illuminating.138
In the so-called Livre mystique, which combined Balzac’s Séraphîta, Louis Lambert, and
Les proscrits, and which was held by Lévi in the highest regard, one inds a “Traité de
la volonté.”139 This Traité contains a number of ideas that would be central to Lévi’s
occultism, such as the importance of the “imagination,”140 the notion of a tradition
of magisme (also mentioned by Ragon),141 and an identiication with the doctrine of
Swedenborg, which Lévi critically discussed repeatedly.142 It will be recalled that Lévi
had incorporated the ideas of Fourier and Swedenborg in his science universelle, and
that he had become acquainted with magnetistic and “Swedenborgian” theories (or
theories that were perceived as such) in a socialist and Romantic context.143
In any case, Constant only revealed an interest in magnetism in his publications after 1853. His most immediate sources, including Du Potet, were those by
the “spiritualistic magnetists.”144 Soon he “oficially” joined their ranks, as his own
books were printed by Germer Baillière, a medical publisher that housed the leading
136
Dogme et rituel, 1, 106; Clef, 287.
Dogme et rituel, 2, 183, 206–07. Cf. George Sand, “Spiridion,” in Œuvres complètes (Genf:
Slatkine, 1980), 414–16.
138
E.g., he compared himself and Esquiros with Balzac’s Louis Lambert: Lévi, Histoire,
522–23. A comprehensive discussion of the role of esotericism for the writings of Balzac can
be found in Anne-Marie Baron, Balzac occulte. Alchimie, magnétisme, sociétés secrètes (Paris: L’Age
d’Homme, 2013).
139
See Honoré de Balzac, Le livre mystique, 2 vols., vol. 1 (Paris: Werdet, 1835), 181–203. For a
detailed discussion, see Strube, Sozialismus, 342–49. Cf. Robert Darnton, Mesmerism and the End
of the Enlightenment in France (Cambridge/London: Harvard University Press, 1968), 150–59,
and Lynn R. Wilkinson, The Dream of an Absolute Language: Emanuel Swedenborg and French
Literary Culture (Albany: State University of New York Press, 1996), esp. 163–64 and Baron,
Balzac, 41–55.
140
Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 2, 158; Histoire, 220; Clef, 122, 96.
141
E.g., Dogme et rituel, 1, 8; Histoire, 55–56, 92, 177. Cf. Ragon, Maçonnerie, 79–93.
142
Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 1, 169; ibid., 2: 182f.; Histoire, 412.
143
See Strube, Sozialismus, 339–42, where the role of the eccentric Constant Chéneau is discussed in the context of the French reception of Swedenborg.
144
See ibid., 460–70, 524–34; cf. John Warne Monroe, Laboratories of Faith: Mesmerism, Spiritism,
and Occultism in Modern France (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2008), 64–94.
137
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
67
spiritualistic magnetists.145 In contrast to theoreticians who perceived the magnetic
force to be purely physical matter, these spiritualists were convinced of its profoundly religious and traditional implications. By arguing that the recent magnetistic
approaches were only a rediscovery of ancient magical wisdom, they heralded a
future synthesis of science and religion. Lévi had probably met some of them in
the salons of an old friend and comrade, Charles Fauvety (1813–1894), who had
argued that the doctrines of Swedenborg, Fourier, and Mesmer were essentially
identical. He did so in a journal that he edited with Lévi in 1846, La vérité sur toutes
choses.146 These magnetists included Louis Goupy, whose Quaere et invenies (1853) was
advertised together with Lévi’s Dogme et rituel.147 Remarkably often, the spiritualistic
magnetists were socialist veterans who were pursuing their old dream of a synthesis
of religion, science, and politics, seeking to establish a perfect social order. Du Potet,
perhaps the most important source for Lévi’s magnetistic-magical theory, had an
openly revolutionary past and concealed his socialist tendencies only because of the
unfavorable atmosphere of the 1850s.148 Alphonse Esquiros, who corresponded
with Du Potet during the revolutionary years about the implications of magnetism,
had discussed “magic, magnetism, and occult medicine” as early as in his Evangile du
peuple from 1840, a sort of partner publication of the Bible de la liberté.149 In his La vie
future au point de vue socialiste, which was written after the disastrous June Uprising of
1849 and contains an impressive depiction of Lévi’s and Esquiros’ despair, he maintained that knowledge about the universal force of magnetism and the “occult” laws
of God would be the key to the emancipation of the people: “Until now, science
has been the privilege of the rich.”150 For Esquiros, the popularization of magnetism
equaled a democratization of science, which opened the paths for social progress.151
145
E.g., Du Potet published his Manuel de l’étudiant magnétiseur in 1846. Other publications
include Deleuzes’ Instruction pratique sur le magnétisme animal, and works by Louis-Alphonse
Cahagnet—especially his Magie magnétique (1854), which was repeatedly cited by Lévi—Louis
Goupy, Alexandre Brierre de Boismont, Charles Lafontaine, and André-Saturnin Morin.
146
Charles Fauvety and Alphonse-Louis Constant, Le vérité sur toutes choses (Paris: Auguste Le
Gallois, 1846), 41.
147
Strube, Sozialismus, 461.
148
See, e.g., Du Potet de Sevennoy, Magie, 112: “… c’est ainsi que nous pouvons prévoir et
annoncer les plus grands changements dans l’humanité. Dieu me garde pourtant de formuler ces
changements; on me prendrait pour un socialiste tout rouge.” Between 1846 and 1848, Du Potet
had praised Mesmer as a great revolutionary and equaled his doctrine with those of Saint-Simon
and Fourier in his Journal du magnétisme.
149
Alphonse Esquiros, L’Evangile du peuple, 2nd ed. (Paris: Le Gallois, 1840), 93.
150
De la vie future au point de vue socialiste (Paris: Comon, 1850), 143.
151
Years later, his (then ex-)wife Adèle wrote: “Les communistes ont cru trouver l’égalité
dans le partage des biens. Mais quand même les parts seraient égales, il y aurait toujours les
68
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
The parallels to Lévi’s political dimension of occultism are even more striking
in the writings of another friend, Henri Delaage (1825–1882), a longtime
collaborator of both Du Potet and Esquiros.152 After he had heralded the
regeneration of woman and the “resurrection of the cruciied people” in the
atmosphere of 1848, he published a remarkable book entitled Le monde occulte
in 1851. Denouncing contemporary “materialism,” he demanded the study of
“occult forces” which had been mastered by the ancients.153 Delaage expressed
a decidedly “Catholic” identity and emphasized the need for “initiation,” which
was inspired by Esquiros and in turn exerted a notable inluence on Ragon.154 He
also was visibly inluenced by the doctrines of Fourier. Similar to Lévi, he had
distanced himself from the “wrong” kinds of socialism after 1851, which he,
again like Lévi, saw as especially represented by the “materialist” and “atheist”
school of Proudhon. The key to the realization of a perfect social order was,
in his eyes, the somnambulism taught by the ancient “initiations,” though this
could only be understood in the light of the gospel: “Somnambulism without
Kabbalistic initiation is nothing but a meteor that passes over our heads.” This
true knowledge was about to be rediscovered, and Delaage viewed himself in
the ranks of the “glorious battalion of artists and literates” that would, “despite
the jealous attacks of the bourgeoisie,” march towards an “immortal future.”
As soon as this true somnambulism was adopted by “the priests,” the synthesis
of science and religion and the unity of “social and religious institutions”
would be realized, thus achieving true socialism and the “paradise on Earth.”155
Initiation and Catholicism were for Delaage, as they were for Lévi, obligatory
prerequisites for understanding the key to truth.156
These striking parallels prove that Lévi developed his magnetisticmagical theory in the context of spiritualistic magnetism. This milieu was
quite distinct from the emergent French Spiritist movement, although Allan
différences individuelles. … Le secret de l’égalité ne serait-il pas dans le magnétisme, dans
cette vie qu’on se passe les uns aux autres?” See Adèle Esquiros, “Banquet de la Pentecôte,”
in Petite encyclopédie magnétique pour tous. Recueil complémentaire du “Magnétiseur universel”, ed. Fauvelle
Le Gallois (Paris: E. Voitelain et Compagnie, 1868), 26.
152
Strube, Sozialismus, 464–67.
153
Delaage, Monde, 21–25.
154
Cf. Delaage, Initiation and Delaage, Doctrines. For Ragon’s acknowledgement, see his
Maçonnerie, 97.
155
Henri Delaage, Le monde occulte, ou Mystères du magnétisme dévoilés par le somnambulisme (Paris:
P. Lesigne, 1851), 21–25.
156
This also becomes evident in the criticism of Esquiros in Les ressuscités au ciel et dans l’enfer
(Paris: E. Dentu, 1855), 188–89.
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
69
Kardec (1804–1869) and his followers, the spirites, had also been decisively
inluenced by socialist, especially Fourierist theories.157 Lévi’s attacks on the
tables tournantes were exacerbated by his antipathy towards public spectacles. In
July 1857, he published a scathing series of articles in the newspaper L’Estafette,
denouncing the performances of the popular medium Daniel Dunglas Home
(1833–1886), who came to be one of his favorite targets.158 With a typical
absence of modesty, Lévi challenged the spectacles by comparing them to
his superior “haute magie,” a behavior that was ridiculed by the magnetist
Louis-Constant Cahagnet as an “advertisement” for his own books.159 Lévi
made no secret of his contempt for somnambulists and mediums, who he
regarded as “sick, eccentric, and unbalanced beings.”160 He insisted that “the
American doctrine” posed serious risks because it was detached from “priestly
authority” and “control by hierarchy.”161 When the Spiritist movement became
a recognizable force in public discourse, Lévi launched several attacks on it.162
Yet, his engagement with the actual spirite doctrine was strikingly cursory and
supericial, even in his Science des esprits of 1865.163
Modern Catholic Demonology
Lévi paid relatively little attention to the Spiritists and simply referred to them as
puerile amateurs. He usually did so by stressing the need for initiation into the
Kabbalistic secrets of “true” Catholicism. This strategy, however, did not work
so easily against another class of opponents, Catholic authors who started to
denounce the new phenomena and the theories they entailed, most especially
Jules-Eudes de Mirville (1802–1873) and Roger Gougenot des Mousseaux
(1805–1876), who interpreted the magnetistic and spirit phenomena as the
157
For the central role of Fourierism in Spiritism (and Spiritualism in the USA), see the references in Strube, “Socialist Religion,” 373–74.
158
Lévi, Histoire, 172, 88, 456.
159
Louis-Alphonse Cahagnet, Encyclopédie magnétique spiritualiste, traitant sécialement de faits
psycologique, magie magnétique, swedenborgianisme, nécromancie, magie céleste, etc., vol. 3 (Paris: Chez
l’Auteur/Germer Baillière, 1858), 202. Cahagnet repeatedly criticized Lévi and his friends,
especially because of their self-identiication as Catholics.
160
Lévi, Histoire, 172, 494; Clef, 140–44, 93.
161
Histoire, 297.
162
Clef, 167. Cf. his earlier treatment of disciples of Kardec, the Comte d’Ourches and the
Baron de Goldenstubbé in Histoire, 500–07.
163
Interestingly, Kardec was simply dismissed as a “pantheist” and a poor imitation of the
Saint-Simonians, Swedenborgians, and Mormons: La science des esprits. Révélation du dogme secret des
kabbalistes, esprit occulte des évangiles, appréciation des doctrines et des phénomènes spirites (Paris: Germer
Baillière, 1865), 122, 364–65.
70
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
workings of the devil and his demons. While they welcomed the new interest in
spirituality and the overdue criticism of materialism, they warned of diabolical
forces behind the phenomena and urged people to adhere to the Catholic faith
in order to avoid being misled by them.164 Their works have to be counted among
the most important sources for Lévi, especially de Mirville’s Pneumatologie: Des
esprits et de leurs manifestations luidiques, which appeared between 1851 and 1864
in ive volumes and was critically reviewed by Lévi’s wife Marie-Noémi in the
Revue progressive (1853). Gougenot des Mousseaux’s Mœurs et pratiques des démons
ou des esprits visiteurs (1854) and his study of La magie au dix-neuvième siècle (1860)
were less central to Lévi, but still functioned as an important point of reference.
Both authors reacted not only to the vogue of magnetism, somnambulism, and
Spiritism, but also to the countless cases of possession and other “supernatural”
events that had occurred en masse since the beginning of the century.165
Within the Church, the attitude towards magnetism was anything but
monolithic. Famously, Henri Lacordaire (1802–1861), one of the most prolific former disciples of Lamennais, had adopted magnetistic theories as early as
the late 1840s for his spiritualist apology of Catholicism. In his enormously
successful Conférences in Notre-Dame, which attracted an audience amounting
to tens of thousands,166 he had even attributed the miracles of Jesus Christ
to his mastery of “occult forces.”167 As a matter of fact, Lacordaire, who had
taken a seat among the Left in the National Assembly of 1848, was a friend
of Delaage’s and wrote a preface to Le monde occulte.168 Such exchanges were
possible because it took the Church several decades to agree upon an oficial
position towards these matters.169 It has to be kept in mind that the nineteenth
century saw a surge in miracles and apparitions of saints and the Holy Virgin,
such as the one in Salette (1846). Church authorities faced the dificult task of
164
Strube, Sozialismus, 537–38; cf. Laurant, Esotérisme, 89–92; Nicole Edelman, Voyantes, guérisseuses et
visionnaires en France (Paris: Michel, 1995), 165–68; Yves Vadé, L’enchantement littéraire. Ecriture et magie
de Chateaubriand à Rimbaud (Paris: Gallimard, 1990), 272; Frank Paul Bowman, “Une lecture politique
de la folie religieuse ou théomanie,” Romantisme 24 (1979): 85–86; Monroe, Laboratories, 30–36.
165
For a comprehensive overview, see the seminal study by Bertrand Méheust, Somnambulisme
et médiumnité (1784 – 1930), 2 vols. (Le Plessis Robinson: Synthélabo, 1999).
166
Julien Favre, “Lacordaire orateur. Sa formation et la chronologie de ses oeuvres”
(Dissertation, Universität Fribourg, 1906), and Renée zeller, Lacordaire et ses amis (Paris: Ernest
Flammarion, 1930).
167
Henri-Dominique Lacordaire, Conférences de Notre-Dame de Paris, vol. 3 (Paris: Poussielgue
Frères, 1872), 59–60.
168
Delaage, Monde, 5–10.
169
Jérôme Rousse-Lacordaire, Esotérisme et christianisme. Histoire et enjeux théologiques d’une
expatriation (Paris: Les Editions du Cerf, 2009), 196–203.
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
71
differentiating between legitimate and reprehensible supernatural phenomena.
Lacordaire can be seen as one of those Catholics who interpreted magnetism
as a natural “occult force,” while de Mirville and Gougenot des Mousseaux
represented those who warned of the infernal forces behind it.170
Authors such as Du Potet and Lévi, who explicitly referred to a tradition
of magical wisdom, naturally came into the iring line of the new Catholic
demonologists. Lévi was not outright decried as a necromancer by these vocal
adversaries, but they argued that he, just like so many magicians before him, was
unwittingly dealing with demons which he was fatally mistaking for a neutral
natural agent. An obvious point of attack was the Baphomet and the heretical
tradition it represented. De Mirville regarded Lévi as one of the “faux alexandrins modernes,” referring to the Baphomet of the Templars and citing Matter’s
study.171 This reminds us once more how prominently the School of Alexandria
and the theory of the two opposing traditions emerging from it featured in
nineteenth-century debates about religious legitimacy. De Mirville devoted a
long passage in the third volume of his Pneumatologie to a crushing criticism of
Lévi’s works, which supposedly represented a “false spiritualism” rooted in the
mystical-pantheistic errors of Alexandria. The Baphomet served him as an easy
target, as Lévi himself had presented it as a “pantheistic and magical igure.”172
Similarly, Gougenot des Mousseaux warned of the dangers of the Astral Light
theory symbolized by the Baphomet. Quite correctly, he described Lévi as one
of the contemporary magnétistes transcendants, alongside Du Potet and Goupy,
and warned of his confusion of demonic and natural forces.173
Lévi’s defense against such accusations was radical. He simply denied the
existence of the devil altogether: “Satan, as a superior personality and as force,
does not exist. Satan is the personiication of all errors, all perversities, and
consequently also of all weaknesses.”174 That which is referred to “in a vulgar
manner” as the devil is nothing but the malicious intentions of misled persons:
“The devil, in black magic, is the great magical agent employed for evil by a per170
In 1863, both were invited as referents on an important Catholic congress in Malines
where such matters were discussed. See Nicole Edelman, “Somnambulisme, médiumnité et
socialisme,” Politica Hermetica 9 (1995): 167.
171
Jules-Eudes de Mirville, Pneumatologie, Des Esprits et de leur manifestations luidiques, 5 vols., vol.
2 (Paris: H. Vrayet et Surcy, 1863), 143.
172
Ibid., 3: 399–414, cf. 240, 75.
173
Roger Gougenot des Mousseaux, La magie au dix-neuvième siècle. Ses agents, ses vérités, ses
mensonges (Paris: H. Plon, 1860), 45, 360–61, 37, 227–28, 45; cf. Moeurs et pratiques des démons ou
des esprits visiteurs du spiritisme ancien et moderne, 2nd ed. (Paris: Henri Plon, 1865), xxiv–xxv.
174
Lévi, Dogme et rituel, 2, 213.
72
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
verted will.”175 In his earliest writings, Lévi had adopted a kind of Augustinian
doctrine of privation, which interpreted the devil as nothing but the negation
of good. In his Assomption, he declared that his reading of mystics like Madame
Guyon had taught him to “crush the leaden igure of Satan under my feet”
and reject the notion of evil and damnation.176 Also he vehemently protested
against the identiication of Lucifer with Satan.177 He developed this further in
his theory of the Astral Light and in the broader context of magnetism.178 Lévi
regarded belief in Satan and his machinations as nothing but “superstition.”179
However, in his occultist writings Lucifer and Satan came to symbolize two
opposing tendencies in human nature, which did not exist as independent
forces but as positive or negative instrumentations of the Astral Light.180 This
metaphor was applied in religious, philosophical, and political ways, as Lucifer
was depicted as the force of liberty and progress, while Satan stood for perversion and anarchy—this is the main reason why it is mistaken to identify the
Baphomet with the inverted pentagram described in Rituel.181 Lévi’s notion of
equilibrium, as represented by the Baphomet, has to be seen against this background. This becomes especially clear in the following passage:
Let us say now, for the ediication of the vulgar, for the satisfaction of Monsieur le
Comte de Mirville, for the justiication of Bodin the demonomaniac, for the greatest glory of the Church, which has persecuted the Templars, burnt the magicians,
excommunicated the Freemasons, etc., etc.; let us boldly and frankly say that all
initiates of the occult sciences (I am talking about inferior initiates and profaners
of the great arcanum) have adored, still adore, and will always adore that which is
signiied by this dreadful symbol.
Yes, in our profound conviction, the grand masters of the Order of the Temple
have adored the Baphomet and they have made their initiates adore him…; but the
adorers of this sign do not think like us that it is the representation of the devil,
but rather that of the god Pan, the god of our schools of modern philosophy, the
175
Ibid., 1: 289; cf. Ibid., 226, 107; ibid., 2: 102.
Constant, Assomption, xx.
177
For a detailed discussion of the sometimes ambiguous relationship between Lucifer
and Satan in Lévi’s works, see Strube, Sozialismus, 541–43 and “Eliphas Lévi. Lucifer as
Revolutionary and Redeemer,” in Satanism: A Reader, eds. Per Faxneld and Johan Nilsson
(New York et al.: Oxford University Press). Cf. Luijk, “Satan,” esp. 155–67.
178
Lévi, Clef, 219, 50.
179
Histoire, 291–97, 417.
180
Ibid., 12–16, 192–201.
181
Dogme et rituel, 2, 98.
176
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
73
god of the theurgists of the School of Alexandria and of the Neoplatonic mystics
of our days: the god of Lamartine and of Monsieur Hugo, the god of Spinoza and
Plato, the god of the primitive Gnostic schools; even the Christ of the dissident
priesthood; and this last qualiication, ascribed to the goat of black magic, will not
astonish those who study the religious antiquities and who are acquainted with the
phases of the diverse transformations of the symbolism and dogma, be it in India,
be it in Egypt, be it in Judea.182
This is one of the most quoted passages referring to the Baphomet, but oddly
enough it has never been put in the context that was made very explicit by Lévi
himself: his polemics against Mirville and other Catholic authors. Obviously,
his statement about the Baphomet and the tradition behind it is marked by a
curious ambiguousness, which might appear puzzling if taken out of context.
Lévi was implicitly conirming that the Baphomet was the object of Devil
worship, witches’ sabbaths and other abominable practices, while at the same
time presenting it as an embodiment of the tradition that he regarded as the
bearer of the one and only eternal truth. This equivocalness has hopefully
become more comprehensible for the reader in light of the dialectical narrative
discussed in the previous section, and in light of the various contexts in which
Lévi positioned himself as the provider of the universal key to occult wisdom.
5. Conclusion
It has been shown that the notion of synthesis and harmony that underlies
Lévi’s Baphomet can only be comprehended against the background of the
socialist doctrines he articulated in his writings of the 1840s. This political
character of his occultism, which became most obvious in his articles for
the Revue philosophique et religieuses, and then in his writings from La clef des
grands mystères forwards, is expressed by its inal aim to create a perfect social
order. Lévi wanted to realize this project by creating an élite of initiates, a kind
of occultist Avantgarde, who were to take up the secret tradition represented
by the Baphomet. The irst step towards this was “to create oneself,” a task
that should follow the emancipatory Luciferian aspiration towards liberty and
knowledge. Lévi wrote quite explicitly that he wanted to open up the path to
emancipation for everyone, until there would only be “one family” equal before
God. Until then, however, the barrier of “initiation” would ensure that only
Ibid., 209–10. The reference to “symbolism” relects the countless plates that can be found
in works such as Matter’s and the numerous contemporary studies about the origins of religion.
182
74
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
the worthy would lead the lock towards the light. In developing his notion
of initiation he was clearly inspired by Freemasonry, as represented in works
such as Ragon’s. In the 1850s, Freemasonry had become a gathering point for
the opposition, and the salons of Fauvety turned into an important platform
for this process.183 However, Lévi had been highly skeptical of Freemasonry
from the beginning, and only became a Freemason for a short period before
polemically distancing himself from the movement and denouncing it sharply.
Once more, he had turned his back on those who he regarded as “false”
representatives of a tradition which they failed to understand.
The superior “science” that Lévi propagated was supposed to lead to the
inal synthesis of science, religion, and philosophy. This required the formation of the science universelle that Lévi irst described in the 1840s and later
developed into his magical theory. The reader will have noted the absence of
Medieval and Early Modern sources in this article. Lévi did consult the works
of authors from those periods, most notably Guillaume Postel, Paracelsus,
Franciscus Patricius or Heinrich Khunrath, but his treatment was cursory and
remarkably supericial.184 Instead, it has been demonstrated that his magical
theory was developed in the context of spiritualistic magnetism and his polemics against Catholic writers. His concept of the Astral Light, which was so
central to his drawing of the Baphomet, can only be understood against the
background of the 1850s.
At the center of Lévi’s writings stood his identity as a “true Catholic,” an
identity that he shared with authors such as Delaage. This question of “true”
religion was the subject of literally all the discourses that have been discussed
in the present article. It is curious that the School of Alexandria became the
focal point not only of debates about the history of Freemasonry, but also
about the origins of Christianity, the history of Gnosticism, and the development of socialism, which supposedly ranked among the most recent heirs of
either the tradition of error or that of truth. This shows the preoccupation of
contemporaries with the origin and the future of religion, which often manifested as a belief in the primitive unity of all religions and its restoration in
a future synthesis. Lévi’s historical narrative appears against this background,
not as the result of an ancient esoteric tradition, but as the outcome of prominent discourses about the meaning and place of religion in modern society.
183
Strube, Sozialismus, 482–84.
Ibid., 544–63. Cf. the early criticism by Arthur Edward Waite in Eliphas Lévi, Transcendental Magic:
Its Doctrine and Ritual, trans. Arthur Edward Waite (London: Redway, 1896), xi–xiii. Waite developed
his own highly speculative narrative of initiation to explain the ambiguous doctrine of Lévi.
184
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
75
As one of many socialists who had been disillusioned by the failed revolution
of 1848, he developed his occultism in distinct opposition to “false” socialism
and “false” Catholicism, the two constant points of reference in his writings,
which consequently functioned as his main identity markers. The monstrous
igure of the Baphomet is an embodiment of all those aspects: the inal synthesis of science, religion, philosophy, and politics, which would be realized
through the progressive decryption of the tradition of “true” religion and the
creation of the Kingdom of God on Earth.
Bibliography
Andrews, Naomi Judith. “‘La Mère Humanité’: Femininity in the Romantic Socialism of
Pierre Leroux and the Abbé A.-L. Constant.” Journal of the History of Ideas 63, no. 4 (2002):
697–716.
———. Socialism’s Muse: Gender in the Intellectual Landscape of French Romantic Socialism. Lanham:
Lexington Books, 2006.
Baier, Karl. Meditation und Moderne. Zur Genese eines Kernbereichs moderner Spiritualität in der
Wechselwirkung zwischen Westeuropa, Nordamerika und Asien. 2 vols. Vol. 1, Würzburg:
Königshausen & Neumann, 2009.
Balzac, Honoré de. Le livre mystique. 2 vols. Vol. 1, Paris: Werdet, 1835.
Baron, Anne-Marie. Balzac occulte. Alchimie, magnétisme, sociétés secrètes. Paris: L’Age d’Homme, 2013.
Barruel, Augustin. Mémoires pour servir a l’histoire du jacobinisme. 4 vols. Vol. 2, London et al.:
L’Imprimerie Françoise et al., 1797.
Bénichou, Paul. Romantismes français. 2 vols. Vol. 1, Paris: Gallimard, 2004. 1973.
Blavatsky, Helena Petrovna. Isis Unveiled: A Master-Key to the Mysteries of Ancient and Modern Science
and Theology. 2 vols. Vol. 1, New York/London: J. W. Bouton/Bernard Quaritch, 1877.
———. The Secret Doctrine. The Synthesis of Science, Religion, and Philosophy. 3rd ed. 3 vols. Vol. 1,
London: The Theosophical Publishing House, 1893. 1888.
Bowman, Frank Paul. Eliphas Lévi, visionnaire romantique. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France, 1969.
———. Le Christ des barricades. Paris: Editions du Cerf, 1987.
———. “Une lecture politique de la folie religieuse ou théomanie.” Romantisme 24 (1979): 75–87.
Cahagnet, Louis-Alphonse. Encyclopédie magnétique spiritualiste, traitant sécialement de faits psycologique,
magie magnétique, swedenborgianisme, nécromancie, magie céleste, etc. Vol. 3, Paris: Chez l’Auteur/
Germer Baillière, 1858.
Calmet, Augustin. Traité sur les apparitions des esprits et sur les vampires. Vol. 1, Senones: Joseph Pariset, 1769.
Cellier, Léon. L’épopée romantique. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France, 1954.
Chacornac, Paul. Eliphas Lévi. Rénovateur de l’Occultisme en France (1810–1875). Paris: Chacornac
Frères, 1989. 1926.
Clavel, François-Timoléon Bègue. Histoire pittoresque de la franc-maçonnerie et des sociétés secrètes
anciennes et modernes. 2nd ed. Paris: Pagnerre, 1843.
Collin de Plancy, Jacques Albin Simon. Dictionnaire infernal. 3rd ed. Paris/Lyon: Paul Mellier/
Guyot, 1844.
76
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
Combes, André. Histoire de la franc-maçonnerie au XIXe siècle. 2 vols. Vol. 1, Monaco: Editions
du Rocher, 1998.
Constant, Alphonse-Louis. “Des origines cabalistiques du christianisme.” In La revue
philosophique et religieuse, 29–46. Paris: Bureaux de la Revue, 1855.
———. Dictionnaire de littérature chrétienne. Edited by Abbé Migne Paris: J.-P. Migne, 1851.
———. Doctrines religieuses et sociales. Paris: Le Gallois, 1841.
———. L’Assomption de la femme ou Le livre de l’amour. Paris: La Gallois, 1841.
———. La Bible de la Liberté. Paris: Le Gallois, 1841.
———. La mère de Dieu. Epopée religieuse et humanitaire. Paris: Charles Gosselin, 1844.
———. Le Livre des Larmes ou Le Christ Consolateur. Essai de conciliation entre l’Église catholique et
la philosophie moderne. Paris: Paulier, 1845.
———. “Les classiques de la Kabbale. Second article. Les Talmudistes et le Talmud.” La revue
philosophique et religieuse, 385–93. Paris: Bureaux de la Revue, 1856.
———. “Les prétendues sciences occultes, ou la folie artiicielle et les manœuvres qui la
produisent.” In Revue progressive, 234–43. Paris/London/Brüssel: Au Bureau de la Revue/
Barthés et Lowell/M. Périchon, 1853.
———. “Orthodoxie maçonnique, suivie de la maçonnerie occulte et de l’initiation hermétique,
par J.-M. Ragon.” In Revue progressive, 131–37. Paris/London/Brüssel: Au Bureau de la
Revue/Barthés et Lowell/M. Périchon, 1853.
Darnton, Robert. Mesmerism and the End of the Enlightenment in France. Cambridge, MA/London:
Harvard University Press, 1968.
Decker, Ronald, Thierry Depaulis, and Michael Dummett. A Wicked Pack of Cards: The origins
of the Occult Tarot. London: Duckworth, 1996.
Delaage, Henri. Le monde occulte, ou Mystères du magnétisme dévoilés par le somnambulisme. Paris: P.
Lesigne, 1851.
———. Les ressuscités au ciel et dans l’enfer. Paris: E. Dentu, 1855.
Denis, Ferdinand. Tableau historique, analytique et critique des sciences occultes. Paris: Bureau de
l’Encyclopédie portative/Bachelier, 1830.
Du Potet de Sevennoy, Jules. La magie dévoilée ou principes de science occulte. Paris: Pommeret et
Moreau, 1852.
Dutoit-Membrini, Jean-Philippe. La philosophie divine appliquée aux lumières naturelle, magique,
astrale, surnaturelle, céleste et divine. Vol. 1, n.p., 1793.
Edelman, Nicole. “Somnambulisme, médiumnité et socialisme.” Politica Hermetica 9 (1995): 108–17.
———. Voyantes, guérisseuses et visionnaires en France. Paris: Michel, 1995.
Esquiros, Adèle. “Banquet de la Pentecôte.” In Petite encyclopédie magnétique pour tous. Recueil
complémentaire du “Magnétiseur universel,” edited by Fauvelle Le Gallois, 23–26. Paris: E.
Voitelain et Compagnie, 1868.
Esquiros, Alphonse. De la vie future au point de vue socialiste. Paris: Comon, 1850.
———. Histoire des Montagnards. Paris: Victor Lecou, 1847.
———. Histoire des Montagnards. Œuvres d’Alphonse Esquiros. Paris: Librairie de la Renaissance,
1875. 1847.
———. L’Evangile du peuple. 2nd ed. Paris: Le Gallois, 1840.
Faivre, Antoine. Access to Western Esotericism. Albany: State University of New York Press, 1994.
Fauvety, Charles, and Alphonse-Louis Constant. Le vérité sur toutes choses. Paris: Auguste Le
Gallois, 1846.
Favre, Julien. “Lacordaire orateur. Sa formation et la chronologie de ses oeuvres.” Dissertation,
Universität Fribourg, 1906.
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
77
Faxneld, Per. Satanic Feminism: Lucifer as the Liberator of Woman in Nineteenth-Century Culture.
Stockholm: Molin & Sorgenfrei, 2014.
Forshaw, Peter J. “’Alchemy in the Amphitheatre’. Some Consideration of the Alchemical Content
of the Engravings in Heinrich Khunrath’s ‘Amphitheatre of Eternal Wisdom’.” In Art and
Alchemy, edited by Jacob Wamberg, 154–76. Kopenhagen: Museum Tusculanum Press, 2006.
Franck, Adolphe. Dictionnaire des sciences philosophiques. Vol. 3, Paris: L. Hachette, 1847.
Garinet, Jules. Histoire de la magie en France. Paris: Foulon et Compagnie, 1818.
Gougenot des Mousseaux, Roger. La magie au dix-neuvième siècle. Ses agents, ses vérités, ses mensonges.
Paris: H. Plon, 1860.
———. Moeurs et pratiques des démons ou des esprits visiteurs du spiritisme ancien et moderne. 2nd ed.
Paris: Henri Plon, 1865. 1854.
Guaïta, Stanislas de. Essais de sciences maudites, vol. 2: Le Serpent de la Genèse, seconde septaine: La clef
de la magie noire. Paris: Henri Durville, 1920. 1897.
Hammer-Purgstall, Joseph von. “Mysterium baphometis revelatum, seu fratres militiae templi,
qua Gnostici et quidem Ophiani apostasiae, idoloduliae et impuritatis convicti per ipsa
eorum monumenta.” In Mines de l’Orient, 1–120. Vienna: Antoine Schmid, 1818.
Hammermayer, Ludwig. Der Wilhelmsbader Freimaurer-Konvent von 1782. Ein Höhe- und Wendepunkt in
der Geschichte der deutschen und europäischen Geheimgesellschaften. Heidelberg: Lambert Schneider, 1980.
———. “lluminaten in Bayern. zur Geschichte, Fortwirken und Legende des Geheimbundes.
Entstehung, System, Wirkung (1776/1785/87).” In Der Illuminatenorden (1776–1785/87),
edited by Helmut Reinalter, 24, 21–77. Frankfurt am Main et al.: Peter Lang, 1997.
Hanegraaff, Wouter. “The Beginnings of Occultist Kabbalah. Adolphe Franck and Eliphas
Lévi.” In Kabbalah and Modernity. Interpretations, Transformations, Adaptations, edited by Boaz
Huss, Marco Pasi and Kocku von Stuckrad, 107–28. Leiden: Brill, 2010.
———. Esotericism and the Academy. Rejected Knowledge in Western Culture. Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press, 2012.
Hesteau de Nuysement, Clovis. Traittez de l’harmonie et constitution généralle du vray sel, secret des
philosophes, et de l’esprit universelle du monde, suivant le troisiesme principe du Cosmopolite. La Haye:
Theodore Maire, 1639.
Joly, Alice. Un mystique lyonnais et les secrets de la Franc-Maçonnerie, 1730–1824. Mâcon: Protat
Frères, 1938.
Keller, Jules. Le théosophe alsacien Frédéric-Rodolphe Saltzmann et les milieux spirituels de son temps.
Contribution à l’étude de l’illuminisme et du mysticisme à la in du XVIIIe et au début du XIXe siècle.
Europäische Hochschulschriften. 2 vols. Bern et al.: Peter Lang, 1985.
Lacordaire, Henri-Dominique. Conférences de Notre-Dame de Paris. Vol. 3, Paris: Poussielgue
Frères, 1872.
Laplanche, François. La Bible en France entre mythe et critique, XVIe-XIXe siècle. Paris: Albin
Michel, 1994.
Laurant, Jean-Pierre. L’ésotérisme chrétien en France au XIXe siècle. Lausanne: L’Age d’Homme,
1992.
Le Forestier, René. La franc-maçonnerie templière et occultiste aux XVIIIe et XIXe siècles. Paris/
Louvain: Aubier-Montaigne/Editions Nauwelaerts, 1970.
Lévi, Eliphas. Dogme et rituel de la haute magie. 2nd ed. 2 vols. Vol. 1, Paris/London/New York:
Germer Baillière, 1861. 1856.
———. Dogme et rituel de la haute magie. 2nd ed. 2 vols. Vol. 2, Paris/London/New York:
Germer Baillière, 1861. 1856.
78
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
———. Histoire de la magie. Paris: Baillière, 1860.
———. La clef des grands mystères. Paris: Baillière, 1861.
———. La science des esprits. Révélation du dogme secret des kabbalistes, esprit occulte des évangiles,
appréciation des doctrines et des phénomènes spirites. Paris: Germer Baillière, 1865.
———. Le livre des splendeurs, contenant le soleil judaïque, la gloire chrétienne et l’étoile lamboyante,
études sur les origines de la cabale, avec des recherches sur les mystères de la francmaçonnerie, suivies de la
profession de foi et des éléments de cabale. Paris: Chamuel, 1894.
———. Transcendental Magic. Its Doctrine and Ritual. Translated by Arthur Edward Waite.
London: Redway, 1896.
Linden, Jacques P. van den. Alphonse Esquiros. De la bohème romantique à la république sociale.
Heerlen/Paris: Winants/Nizet, 1948.
Long, Kathleen P. Hermaphrodites in Renaissance Europe. Women and Gender in the Early Modern
World. Aldershot/Burlington: Ashgate, 2006.
Luijk, Ruben van. “Satan Rehabilitated? A Study into Satanism During the Nineteenth
Century.” Dissertation, Universiteit van Tilburg, 2013.
Maret, Henry. Essai sur le panthéisme dans les sociétés modernes. Paris: Sapia, 1840.
Matter, Jacques. Histoire critique du gnosticisme et de son inluence sur les sectes religieuses et philosophiques
des six premiers siècles de l’ère chrétienne. 2 vols. Vol. 2, Paris: F.-G. Levrault, 1828.
———. Histoire critique du gnosticisme et de son inluence sur les sectes religieuses et philosophiques des six
premiers siècles de l’ère chrétienne. 2 vols. Vol. 1, Paris: F.-G. Levrault, 1828.
———. Histoire critique du gnosticisme: Planches. Paris: F.-G. Levrault, 1828.
McCalla, Arthur. “The Mennaisian ‘Catholic Science of Religion’: Epistemology and History
in Early Nineteenth-Century French Study.” Method and Theory in the Study of Religion 21,
no. 3 (2009): 285–309.
McIntosh, Christopher. Eliphas Lévi and the French Occult Revival. 2nd ed. London: Rider, 1975.
Méheust, Bertrand. Somnambulisme et médiumnité (1784 – 1930). 2 vols. Le Plessis Robinson:
Synthélabo, 1999.
Milner, Max. Le diable dans la littérature française, de Cozotte à Baudelaire, 1772–1861. 2 vols. Vol.
1, Paris: J. Corti, 1960.
———. Le diable dans la littérature française, de Cozotte à Baudelaire, 1772–1861. 2 vols. Vol. 2,
Paris: J. Corti, 1960.
Mirville, Jules-Eudes de. Pneumatologie, Des Esprits et de leur manifestations luidiques. 5 vols. Vol. 2,
Paris: H. Vrayet et Surcy, 1863.
———. Pneumatologie, Des Esprits et de leur manifestations luidiques. 5 vols. Vol. 3, Paris: H. Vrayet
et Surcy, 1863.
Mollier, Pierre. “Freemasonry and Templarism.” In Handbook of Freemasonry, edited by Henrik
Bogdan and Jan A. M. Snoek, 82–99. London/Boston: Brill, 2014.
———. La chevalerie maçonnique. Franc-maçonnerie, imaginaire chevaleresque et légende templière au siècle
des Lumières. Paris: Editions Dervy, 2005.
Monroe, John Warne. Laboratories of Faith. Mesmerism, Spiritism, and Occultism in Modern France.
Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2008.
Müller, Ursula. “Die Gestalt Lucifers in der Dichtung vom Barock bis zur Romantik.”
Dissertation, Universität Gießen, 1940.
Nicolai, Friedrich. Versuch über die Beschuldigungen welche dem Tempelherrenorden gemacht worden, und
über dessen Geheimniß. Berlin/Stettin, 1782.
Otto, Bernd-Christian. “A (Catholic) ‘Magician’ Historicizes ‘Magic’: Eliphas Lévi’s Histoire
de la Magie.” In History and Religion: Writing a Religious Past, edited by Bernd-Christian Otto,
Susanne Rau and Jörg Rüpke, 419–43. Berlin: De Gruyter, 2015.
Strube / Correspondences 4 (2016) 37–79
79
———. Magie. Rezeptions- und diskursgeschichtliche Analysen von der Antike bis zur Neuzeit. Berlin:
De Gruyter, 2011.
Ragon, Jean-Marie. Cours philosophique et interprétatif des initiations anciennes et modernes. Paris:
Berlandier, 1841.
———. Maçonnerie occulte suivie de l’initiation hermétique. Paris: Dentu, 1853.
Reghellini, Marcello. La Maçonnerie considérée comme le résultat des religions égyptienne, juive et chrétienne.
4 vols. Vol. 1, Bruxelles: H. Tarlier, 1829.
Rétat, Claude. “Jean-Marie Ragon. Ou: Qu’est-ce qu’un Maçon Instruit?”. Renaissance
Traditionnelle 143/144 (2005): 175–202.
Reybaud, Louis. “Des idées et des sectes communistes.” In Revue des deux mondes, 5-47. Paris:
Au Bureau de la Revue des deux mondes, 1842.
———. Etudes sur les réformateurs contemporains ou socialistes modernes. Paris: Guillaumin et
Compagnie, 1840.
Rousse-Lacordaire, Jérôme. Esotérisme et christianisme. Histoire et enjeux théologiques d’une expatriation. Paris: Les Editions du Cerf, 2009. 2007.
Sand, George. “Spiridion.” In Œuvres complètes. Genf: Slatkine, 1980.
Schiffmann, Gustav Adolf. Die Entstehung der Rittergrade in der Freimaureri um die Mitte des 18.
Jahrhunderts. Leipzig: Bruno zechel, 1882.
Strube, Julian. “Ein neues Christentum. Frühsozialismus, Neo-Katholizismus und die Einheit von
Religion und Wissenschaft.” Zeitschrift für Religions- und Geistesgeschichte 66, no. 2 (2014): 140–62.
———. “Eliphas Lévi: Lucifer as Revolutionary and Redeemer.” In Satanism. A Reader, edited
by Per Faxneld and Johan Nilsson. New York et al.: Oxford University Press (forthcoming).
———. “Revolution, Illuminismus und Theosophie. Eine Genealogie der ‘häretischen’
Historiographie des frühen französischen Sozialismus und Kommunismus.” Historische
Zeitschrift (forthcoming).
———. “Socialism and Esotericism in July Monarchy France.” History of Religions (forthcoming).
———. “Socialist Religion and the Emergence of Occultism: A Genealogical Approach to
Socialism and Secularization in 19th-Century France.” Religion 46, no. 3 (2016): 359–88.
———. Sozialismus, Katholizisimus und Okkultismus im Frankreich des 19. Jahrhunderts. Die Genealogie
der Schriften von Eliphas Lévi. Religionsgeschichtliche Versuche und Vorarbeiten. Berlin/
Boston: De Gruyter, 2016.
Thiers, Jean Baptiste. Traité des superstitions qui regardent les sacrements Vol. 2, Paris: Antoine
Dezallier, 1697.
Thonissen, Jean Joseph. Le socialisme depuis l’antiquité jusqu’à la constitution française du 14
janvier 1852. 2 vols. Vol. 1, Louvain/Paris: Vanlinthout et Compagnie/Sagnier et Bray,
1852.
Vadé, Yves. L’enchantement littéraire. Ecriture et magie de Chateaubriand à Rimbaud. Paris: Gallimard,
1990.
Viatte, Auguste. Les sources occultes du romantisme. Illuminisme, Théosophie 1770–1820. 2 vols. Vol.
1, Paris: Champion, 1928.
Wilkinson, Lynn R. The Dream of an Absolute Language: Emanuel Swedenborg and French Literary
Culture. Albany: State University of New York Press, 1996.
zeller, Renée. Lacordaire et ses amis. Paris: Ernest Flammarion, 1930.
zielonka, Anthony. Alphonse Esquiros (1812–1876): A Study of his Works. Paris/Genève:
Champion/Slatkine, 1985.
Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
ISSN: 2053-7158 (Online)
correspondencesjournal.com
Translations of the Zohar:
Historical Contexts and Ideological Frameworks*
Boaz Huss
E-mail: bhuss@bgu.ac.il
Abstract
The zohar, a compilation of Kabbalistic texts which were written in the late thirteenth and
early fourteenth centuries, was bestowed an authoritative and sacred status in many Jewish
communities. Together with its central role in Jewish culture, the zohar stimulated considerable interest in Christian Kabbalistic and Western esoteric circles. In recent years, a newly
awakened interest in the Kabbalah and the zohar has been evident in many circles both in
Israel and all over the world. The interest in the zohar stimulated its translation into different
languages, each created according to different motivations and within diverse theological and
ideological frameworks. This article offers a review of the history of translations of the zohar
and discusses the historical contexts and ideological frameworks in which these were created.
Keywords
zohar, Kabbalah, Christian Kabbalah, Western Esotericism
*
An earlier version of this article was published in Hebrew, “The Translations of the
zohar,” (Hebrew) in New Developments in Zohar Studies, ed. Ronit Meroz (Tel Aviv: Tel Aviv
University Press, 2007), 33–110. The article was translated by Elana Lutsky.
© 2016 Boaz Huss
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
82
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
Introduction
The zohar, a compilation of Kabbalistic texts, most of them probably composed in Castile in the late thirteenth and early fourteenth century, became the
central book of Kabbalah and has been accepted in many Jewish circles since
the early modern period as an authoritative and sacred text. It was also highly
esteemed by Christian Kabbalists in the Renaissance and Baroque periods, as
well as by modern Western esotericists in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries.
Today, there is ongoing interest in the zohar in many Jewish circles, as well as
amongst non-Jewish spiritual seekers and scholars of Jewish and religious studies.
Most of the zoharic texts are written in Aramaic. Since the appearance
of the zohar, parts of the text and sometimes the whole zoharic corpus
(which was printed for the irst time in the sixteenth century) were translated
to different languages. The different translations of the zohar were all done
for the purpose of enabling readers who could not understand Aramaic to
approach the zohar. Yet, these translations differ from one another in the
reader-audience they address, in the choice of zoharic material translated, and
in the ideological, political and economic factors that stimulated and enabled
the various translation projects.
Partial reviews of zohar translations were made by Isaiah Tishby in his
introduction to The Wisdom of the Zohar, and by Gershom Scholem in his
encyclopedic article on the zohar.1 A detailed review of translations of the
zohar in English was made by Don Karr in 1985 (and updated several times
since).2 My study is based on these partial reviews, as well as further research
in libraries (especially the Gershom Scholem Library at the National Library of
Israel), catalogues and archives. The number of zohar translations, especially
anthologies of the zohar, is very large. Many of the earlier translations were
never printed, some of the translations were made in languages which are not
accessible to me, and new translations may have appeared after I inished my
research. Hence, although I have tried to make my study as comprehensive
as possible, it is probably not exhaustive. The purpose of the study is not to
provide a full list of zohar translations; rather, it seeks to outline their history
and to examine the different historical, social and ideological contexts in which
they were created.
1
Isaiah Tishby, The Wisdom of the Zohar, vol. 1 (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1989),
101–2; Gershom Scholem, Kabbala (Jerusalem: Keter, 1974), 239–42 .
2
Don Kar, “Notes on The zohar in English,” http://www.digital-brilliance.com/kab/karr/
zie.pdf (accessed 15.11.2016).
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
83
In the following, I will offer a chronological survey of zohar translations,
beginning with the early translations of the zohar into Hebrew, which were
made in the fourteenth century. I will discuss the Latin translations of the zohar
made by Christian Kabbalists in the Renaissance, the translation of anthologies
of the zohar into Jewish vernacular languages in the Baroque period, and the
Sabbatean inspired translations of the zohar in the seventeenth and eighteenth
centuries. I will further examine the irst translations of the Zohar into modern
European languages, which were made by Christian authors, as well as later
translations into European languages by Western occultists as well as Jewish
scholars. I will conclude the article with a discussion of twentieth and twentyirst century scholarly translations of the Zohar, and of the recent translation
projects conducted in Jewish orthodox and neo-Kabbalistic circles. Before
beginning the discussion of the zohar translations and their historical contexts,
I would like to offer a short introduction on the zohar and its reception history.
The Zohar and Its Reception
As mentioned above, the zohar is a compilation of texts which were written by
several Jewish Kabbalists in Castile in the late thirteenth and early fourteenth
centuries. The major part of the zoharic canon constitutes Kabbalistic interpretations of the Torah in Aramaic, which are attributed to the second century
sage Rabbi Shimon bar Yochai and his companions. Other units making up
the zoharic corpus are Tiqqunei ha-Zohar, Ra’aya Mehemna, Midrash ha-Ne’elam,
Sifra de-Zeni’uta, and commentaries on Ruth, Lamentations, Song of Songs, and
others.3 A signiicant part of the Zoharic texts was probably composed by the
Castilian Kabbalist, R. Moshe de Leon. Yet, scholars agree that some zoharic
components, such as Tiqqunei Zohar, Ra’aya Mehemna and probably also other
units, were written by different authors.4
The Zoharic texts were not at irst perceived, or circulated, as one literary
whole, nor were they initially called “zohar” or attributed to R. Shimon Bar
Yochai. Only in the irst decades of the fourteenth century did the new notion
of a literary composition called the Sefer ha-Zohar (The Book of Splendour)
emerge among several Kabbalists. Following the emergence of this new idea,
Kabbalists and scribes started collecting zoharic manuscripts and creating
compilations of what each of them perceived to be The zohar, or part of it.
3
4
Gershom Scholem, Major Trends in Jewish Mysticism (New York: Schoken, 1971), 159–62.
Yehuda Liebes, Studies in the Zohar (Albany: SUNY, 1993), 85–90.
84
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
Prior to the printing of the zohar in the mid-sixteenth century, the content
and scope of Sefer ha-Zohar was undetermined, and diverse cultural agents
created different zoharic corpora. In the vast collection of zoharic manuscripts copied between the fourteenth and mid-sixteenth centuries, only a few
are identical or can be regarded as belonging to the same family.
The irst printings of the Zohar in the mid-sixteenth century created the
Zoharic canon as we know it today. The corpus was printed for the irst time,
almost simultaneously, between the years 1557–1560 in two editions: one in
Mantua by a group of Jewish printers, and the other in Cremona by Christians
and converted Jews. The Mantua publishers set out by printing a volume of
Tiqqunei Zohar, later adding three volumes of the zohar divided according to the
portions (parshiot) of the Torah. Apart from zohar commentaries to the Torah,
other zoharic texts were included, such as Midrash ha-Ne’elam, Ra’aya-Mehemna,
and Sifra de-Zeni’uta. At the same time, the printers in Cremona fashioned their
edition in one volume, also arranged according to the Torah portions and including almost all of the texts found in the Mantua edition as well as additional
texts, such as a zoharic interpretation of the Book of Ruth, and Sefer ha-Bahir.
The printers of both editions created their collections on the basis of several
manuscripts. Some zoharic texts that circulated in manuscript form were not incorporated into the irst printed editions. A number of these texts were collected
in a special volume, later known as Zohar Hadash, printed in 1597 in Salonica.
The zohar was bestowed an authoritative and sacred status in many Jewish
communities; irst among the Kabbalist circles in Spain and later on, following
the expulsion of the Jews from Spain and the printing of the zohar, among many
other Jewish communities. It was perceived as the main authoritative source on
matters of the Kabbala, and was also inluential on issues concerning Jewish
customs and laws (Halacha). Together with its central role in Jewish culture, the
zohar stimulated considerable interest in non-Jewish circles: among Christian
Kabbalists in the Renaissance and Baroque periods, and occult circles in the
late nineteenth and early twentieth centuries. In recent years, a newly awakened
interest in the Kabbala and the zohar has been evident in many circles both
in Israel and all over the world.
The interest in the zohar stimulated its translation into different languages.
Throughout the years, from the time the zohar appeared in the late thirteenth
century and up to the present, it has been translated into numerous languages.
I would like to turn now to examine the irst translations of the Zohar into
Hebrew, which were made in the irst three centuries following its appearance.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
85
The First Hebrew Translations of Zoharic Literature
It is possible that some translations of passages from zohar into Hebrew were
done before the writing of the zoharic texts was completed and before the idea of
a literary unit called Sefer ha-Zohar was formulated. In the writings of Rabbi Yosef
Gikatilla and those of Rabbi Moses de Leon, written at the end of the thirteenth
century, one inds several passages written in Hebrew which are parallel to texts that
appear in the zoharic corpuses in Aramaic.5 Yet, it is dificult to determine whether
these passages were translated by these Kabbalists from a zoharic Aramaic text to
Hebrew, or whether the authors of the zoharic texts translated them to Aramaic
from the writings of De Leon and Gikatilla. The irst comprehensive translations
of zoharic texts were probably completed in the early fourteenth century by the
Kabbalist Rabbi David Ben Yehuda He-Hassid.6 Nonetheless, it should be noted
that Yehuda He-Hassid does not mention that these texts were translated from
the zohar, which is never mentioned explicitly in his writings.
zoharic texts translated into Hebrew as Midrash Yehi Or (Homily on “Let there
be light”) appear in Menorat Ha-maor, a book by Rabbi Israel ibn Joseph Al-Nakawa, written in Toledo in the second half of the fourteenth century.7 In 1491, Rabbi
Isaac Mor Hayyim, a Spanish Kabbalist living in Italy, translated and interpreted
the beginning of the Idra Zuta (The Small Assembly) in a letter he sent to Rabbi
Isaac of Pisa.8 Numerous Hebrew paraphrases of zoharic passages appear in the
early sixteenth century in the book Tzror Hamor by Rabbi Avraham Saba.9 More
comprehensive translations of the zohar into Hebrew were produced in the late
sixteenth century, including one in Egypt by Rabbi Yehuda Masud,10 as well as two
other anonymous translations in Egypt, one of them written in 1576.11
5
Asi Farber-Ginat, Joseph Gikatila’s Commentary on Ezekiel’s Chariot (Los Angeles: Cherub
Press, 1998), 29 (Hebrew); Elliot Wolfson The Book of the Pomegranate: Moses De Leon’s Sefer
Harimon (Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1988), 47–48.
6
Moshe Idel, “The Translation of R. David ben Judah Hehasid of the zohar and His
Interpretation of the Alfa Beita,” Alei sefer 8 (1980): 60–73; (1981): 84–98 (Hebrew); Daniel
C. Matt, The Book of Mirrors (Chico: Scholars Press, 1986), 13–15.
7
Hyman Enelow, Sefer menorat hama’or by Israel ibn Joseph Al-Nakawa (New York: Bloch,
1929–1931).
8
Albert William Greenup, “A Kabbalistic Epistle by Isaac b. Samuel b. Hayyim Sephardi,”
Jewish Quarterly Review, 21 (1931): 370–74.
9
Abraham Gross, Iberian Jewry from Twilight to Dawn: The World of Rabbi Abraham Saba (Leiden:
Brill, 1995), 68.
10
Parts of this translation are found in the following manuscripts: New York JTS MS 1769,
New York JTS MS 2009, Ramat-Gan, Bar-Ilan University MS 1065, St. Petersburg MS Evr.
Antonin A 9, St. Petersburg MS. Evr.II A 801, Jerusalem Rabbi Kook Institute MS 745.
11
Jerusalem, The National Library of Israel MS Heb. 80147. The other translation, which was
86
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
The irst translations of Zoharic texts into Hebrew, mainly in the late
ifteenth and throughout the sixteenth century, were done in order to spread
the Zohar beyond the elite rabbinical circles that were luent in Aramaic, aimed
at larger educated Jewish circles that could read Hebrew but found it dificult
to read Aramaic. Thus, Rabbi Isaac Mor Hayyim explained in his letter to
Rabbi Isaac of Pisa that he translated an article of the zohar into Hebrew
because Italian Jews were not proicient in Aramaic.12
The irst Zohar translations into Hebrew were circulated only in manuscripts.
The printing of the zohar in the mid-sixteenth century aroused severe
objections among Kabbalists who claimed that the zohar was an esoteric text
that should not be distributed publicly. It may well be that this objection was
the reason that the irst translations into Hebrew were not printed. As we will
see later on, translations of the Zohar in Hebrew appeared in print for the irst
time only in the seventeenth century, in anthologies that contained only stories
and moral advice from the zohar.
The First Translations of the Zohar into Latin
The irst translations of the Zoharic literature were made into Hebrew by Jewish
scholars for a Jewish readership. From the beginning of the sixteenth century
the Zohar was also translated into Latin by Christian authors, for the beneit of
Christian readers. Within the framework of the Renaissance notion of ancient
wisdom - prisca theologia or philosphia perennis.13 Christian scholars showed great
interest in the Kabbalah and The Book of zohar perceived to contain ancient
divine wisdom. At the outset of the sixteenth century, Latin translations of
passages from the zohar (mostly based on quotes from the zohar in Rabbi
Menachem Recanati’s commentary of the Torah) were included in the writings
of Paul Ricius, Pietro di Galatino and Agostino Giustiniani.14 Around the same
copied in the year 1603 is found at Oxford, Bodleian Library MS 1561. Parts of this translation
were printed in 1946. See Obadya Hedaya The Complete Book of the Zohar on the Torah (Petach
Tikva: Yalkut, 1946).
12
Albert William Greenup, “A Kabbalistic Epistle by Isaac b. Samuel b. Hayyim Sephardi,”
Jewish Quarterly Review 21 (1931): 370.
13
On the notions of prisca theologia and philosophia perennis see Wouter Hanegraaff, Esotericism and the
Academy: Rejected Knowledge in Western Culture (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2012), 6–8.
14
See François Secret, Le Zohar chez les Les Kabbalistes chrétiens de la Renaissance (Paris: Mouton,
1964), 25–34; Gershom Scholem, “Considérations sur l’histoire des débuts de la kabbala
chrétienne,” in Kabbalistes Chrétiens, eds. Gershom Scholem et al. (Paris: Albin Michel, 1979),
31; Khen-Melekh Merhavyah, “Two Quotes from Midrash hane’elam in a Latin Manuscript,”
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
87
time, sections of the zohar were translated into Latin for the Cardinal Egidio
de Viterbo, probably by Baruch of Benevento.15 In 1553, the French Christian
Kabbalist, Guillaume Postel, inished a comprehensive translation of the Zohar
to Genesis, with a commentary. According to Postel, the one who helped
him understand the zohar was an illiterate Venetian nun, Mother Johanna.
Postel could not ind a publisher for his translation, probably because of the
radical messianic commentary it contained. Because he did not receive back the
manuscript of his translation, which he sent to the printer Oporinus in Basel,
Poster prepared a second translation, which was based on the Cremona edition
of the Zohar. This translation, which was more comprehensive than the irst,
was lost.16 In the introduction to his second translation of the zohar, Postel
wrote that the zohar contains the oral version of the Torah delivered to Moses
on Mount Sinai and put into writing by Simeon the righteous, mentioned in the
New Testament, who belonged to a secret Jewish group that believed in Jesus.17
He believed that the truths of the New Testament and the zohar were identical
and that they contained the doctrine of the true religion that was abandoned
by the Jews, who rejected Jesus, and forgotten by the Christians.18 Postel, who
regarded himself as the “Pope of the natural zoharic theology,” viewed the
translation of the zohar as a messianic mission symbolizing the beginning of
the fourth and inal historical era that follows the third era considered to have
begun with Christ’s birth .19
Translations of the zohar into Latin in the sixteenth century were done
with the perception that that the Kabbalah in general and the Book of zohar in
(Hebrew), Kiryat sefer 23 (1968): 566–67. A few short texts from the zohar were translated into
Latin earlier, most likely in the fourteenth century. See ibid., 568.
15
François Secret, Le Zohar chez les Les Kabbalistes chrétiens de la Renaissance (Paris: Mouton,
1964), 23, 34–42.
16
Ibid., 23, 51–63; Marion L. Kuntz, Guillaume Postel, Prophet of the Restitution of all Things:
His Life and Thought (Hague: Nijhof, 1981), 110, 112–13, 137; Judith Weiss, “Guillaume
Postel’s Introduction to His First Latin Translation and Commentary on the Book of zohar”
(Hebrew), in And This Is for Yehuda: Studies Presented to Our Friend, Professor Yehuda Liebes, eds.
Maren R. Niehoff, Ronit Meroz, and Jonathan Garb (Jerusalem: The Bialik Institute, 2012),
258–59; Ronit Meroz and Judith Weiss, “The Source of Guillaume Postel’s 1553 zohar Latin
Translation,” Renaissance Studies 28, no. 4 (2014): 1–14; Wilhelm Schmidt-Biggemann Geschichte
der Christlichen Kabbala, vol. 1 (Stuttgart: Frommann-Holzboog, 2012), 582–96.
17
Bernard McGinn, “Cabbalists and Christians: Relections on Cabala in Medieval and
Renaissance Thought,” in Jewish Christians and Christian Jews, eds. R.H. Popkin and G.M. Weinder
(Dordrecht: Springer, 1994), 25.
18
Ibid., 26.
19
Ibid., 25.
88
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
particular contain ancient divine knowledge, as well as hermeneutic techniques
that reveal and prove the truths of Christian doctrines. Consequently, Christian
Kabbalists were greatly interested in broadening the acquaintance with the
zohar among the Christians through its translation into Latin, and among the
Jews through its distribution in the original languages. Therefore, in addition to
the Latin translations of the zohar, Christian Kabbalists took part in copying
zohar manuscripts and were involved in printings of the zohar in Italy in the
mid-sixteenth century.
The Latin translations and the Christians’ involvement in printing the zohar
had an inluence on the internal Jewish controversy regarding its publication.
Rabbi Jacob Israel Finzi, one of those most vehemently opposed to the printing of the zohar, claimed that its publication would play into the hands of
Christians interested in its translation: “Thus, God forbid, it would get into
the hands of the nations and they would copy it into their language and do
with it as they please.”20 Rabbi Emmanuel of Benevento, one of the printers
of the Mantua edition of the zohar, dismissed Finzi’s objection, arguing that
the Christians already had access to Kabbalistic writings: “Both in manuscripts
and in print in their tongue.”21
Anthologies of Zohar Translations in Hebrew and Yiddish
As mentioned above, the translations of the zohar into Hebrew did not appear in
print in the sixteenth century, most likely because of the objection to distributing
the Zohar to the public that followed the controversy of its irst printings.
Translations of the Zohar into Hebrew, as well as into Yiddish, were irst printed
in the seventeenth century. These were mostly anthologies of zohar passages
that were perceived as exoteric and not comprehensive translations. A short
anthology of zohar translations in Hebrew, Mekor Hokhmah, by Rabbi Issachar
Baer of Kremnitz, was published in Prague in 1611. An adaptation in Yiddish of
a passage from the zohar describing the righteous women’s palace in the Garden
of Eden was published as an appendix to Sefer Olam Haba in Hanau in 1620. In
1660 Constantinople, a comprehensive anthology of zohar articles translated
into Hebrew was printed in the book Me’ulefet Sapirim by Rabbi Shlomo Algazi.
Stories from the zohar (as well as from other Kabbalistic sources) translated
into Yiddish were published in Ma’seh Adonai by Rabbi Simeon Akiva Baer ben
20
Simcha Assaf, “The Controversy over the Printing of Kabbalistic Literature” (Hebrew),
Sinai 5 (1939): 8.
21
Ma’arechet Ha’Elohut (Mantua, 1558), 4a.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
89
Joseph, which was irst published in the beginning of the seventeenth century
in Frankfurt-am-Main. The same author also included tales from the zohar in
Yiddish in Abir Ya’akov, irst published in Sulzbach in 1700.
As stated, translations of the zohar were meant to expand the circle of
its availability to an audience that was unable to read it in its original form.
Yet, because the zohar was perceived as an esoteric text that roused animated
controversy even when printed in Aramaic, the Jewish scholars who translated
it into Hebrew and Yiddish had to justify their actions. The authors of the
irst printed anthologies of Hebrew translations of the Zohar justiied their
translations by distinguishing between the esoteric and exoteric sections of
the zohar and by claiming that the anthologies contained “peshat” (the simple,
literal meaning of texts) articles which are allowed to be distributed to the
public. Rabbi Issachar Baer of Kremnitz describes his book, Mekor Hokhmah,
as “peshtei zohar” intended for the “masses of the world”, Rabbi Shlomo
Algazi also stressed that his anthology contained a collection of zohar articles
“according to the way of peshat.” The distinction between peshat articles of the
zohar and its secretive parts (sodot) enabled the distribution of zohar passages
to the larger public through their translation into Hebrew and Yiddish, while
preserving the image of the zohar as an esoteric text.
Printing of Latin Translations of the Zohar
We have seen above that the zohar was already translated into Latin in the sixteenth century. However, large parts of zoharic literature appeared in Latin in
print only in the late seventeenth century, in the second volume of the highly
inluential book by the Christian Kabbalist Christian Knorr von Rosenroth,
Kabbalah Denudata (Frankfurt-am-Main, 1684). Differing from the Jewish scholars who translated and published only passages perceived as exoteric in the
seventeenth century, Knorr von Rosenroth translated the sections perceived
to be the most esoteric: Sifra diTzni`uta, Idra Raba and Idra Zuta. Up until the
twentieth century, von Rosenroth’s book was the most important source for
spreading the Kabbalah in general and the Book of zohar in particular in European culture. As we will see further on, some of the translations of the zohar
into European languages that were published in the nineteenth and twentieth
centuries were based on the Latin translations of Knorr von Rosenroth.
90
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
Similar to Christian Kabbalists of the sixteenth century, von Rosenroth
found in the zohar the pure and ancient source of ancient wisdom that had
been passed on from generation to generation:
In the Cabbalist writings of the Jews I hoped I would be able to discover what
remained of the ancient Barbaric-Jewish philosophy… I had no greater wish than
that I might be permitted to enjoy the sun itself and its bright light once all the
clouds of obstructions and hindrances were scattered. I scarcely hoped I would
be able to catch sight of this light unless I followed in the footsteps of that river
and arrived at the spring itself. I believed that I would discover this spring in these
very ancient books.22
Following the Christian Kabbalists of the Renaissance period, Knorr von Rosenroth and the Christian Kabbalists who worked with him in the court of Count
Christian August in Sulzbach viewed the Kabbalah and the zohar as an effective
means of converting Jews. In the irst volume of Kabbalah Denudata, von Rosenroth asserted that from experience he had learned that deepening Christians’
knowledge of the Kabbalah enabled a better dialogue with the Jews. He believed
that presenting the truths of Christianity in terminology accepted by the Jews
could persuade them to convert to Christianity. Translations of the zohar and
other Kabbalistic writings in Kabbalah Denudata were intended to deepen Christian knowledge of the Kabbalah; he hoped that this would help convince the
Jews to read the Christian scriptures: “by which means at length the Jews would
be able to read our writings and gradually be drawn back into the way of truth.”23
From this perspective, translation of the zohar into Latin was only part of
a broader mission of the Kabbalistic-Christian collaboration of von Rosenroth
and members of his circle. In 1684, the same year von Rosenroth’s translations
of the zohar into Latin were published, the Christian Kabbalists in Sulzbach
initiated and inanced the printing of the Zohar (in its original language) in Uri
Ben Shraga Bloch’s publishing house. This edition was no doubt intended to
broaden the Jews’ acquaintance with the zohar, which, as said, was perceived
by Christian Kabbalists to be consistent with Christian doctrines. That same
year, the Christian-Kabbalistic collaboration in Sulzbach was concluded with
a printing of the Syriac New Testament in Hebrew type, Ditika Hadata. It
may well be that this printing was meant to enable Jews proicient in Zoharic
22
Knorr von Rosenroth, Kabbalah Denudata (Sulzbach 1677). I follow the translation of
Allison P. Coudert, The Impact of the Kabbalah in the Seventeenth Century (Leiden: Brill, 1999), 111.
23
Knorr von Rosenroth, Kabbalah Denudata (Sulzbach, 1677), 74; Allison P. Coudert, The
Impact of the Kabbalah in the Seventeenth Century, (Leiden: Brill, 1999), 113.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
91
Aramaic to read the New Testament in a similar language and, as von Rosenroth
had hoped, discover the similarity between the zohar and Christianity.24
Knorr von Rosenroth’s translations of the zohar into Latin were not only
intended for a missionary purpose, they were also motivated by internal Christian
interests. Von Rosenroth, who attributed post-Reformational discord amongst
the Christians to their reliance on Greek philosophy, argued that returning to the
original source of Christianity, which was found in the Kabbalah, would unite
the Protestants and the Catholics (as well as the Jews), in the single, true faith:
Because I suspected that so great a separation of Christian religions arose from
no other cause than from such great diversity among Christians of philosophical
principles and metaphysical deinitions… it immediately occurred to me that I
should hunt out that same ancient philosophy which lourished at the time of
Christ and the Apostles… As I was about to examine those ancient opinions about
God and other spiritual and theological matters, I fell upon this most ancient book
of the Jews, which is called Sohar, or Book of Splendor… I discovered that the
chapters themselves and teachings, which ought rather to be called fragments, are
ancient enough and amply set forth the most ancient opinions and hypotheses.25
Despite von Rosenroth granting the Kabbalah great importance, there is also
an apparent ambivalence in his evaluation of the zohar, which he describes as
dirt containing nuggets of gold and precious gems within it:
I entered the path, worn by few, traversed by no one I knew, and, furthermore,
illed with so many hard stones, uneven places, chasms, precipices, and such mud
that it is not surprising that so many, illed with dread, abandoned it with disgust…
I shall sketch for you in a few words what gold and whatever gems I have thus far
dug out of this dirt and what hope leads me further.26
In the beginning of the eighteenth century two additional anthologies of Latin
translations of the zohar were printed. In 1720, in Amsterdam, the Swedish
Hebraist, Andreas Norrelius published a short book called: Phosphoros Orthodoxae
Fidei Veterum Cabbalistarum. This anthology contains zoharic passages with
24
Boaz Huss, “The Text and Context of the zohar Sulzbach Edition,” in Tradition, Heterodoxy
and Religious Culture: Judaism and Christianity in the Early Modern Period, eds. Chanita Goodblatt
and Howard Kreisel (Be’er Sheva: Ben-Gurion University Press, 2006), 117–38.
25
Knorr von Rosenroth, Kabbalah Denudata (Sulzbach, 1677), 74. I follow the translation of
Coudert, The Impact of the Kabbalah, 114.
26
Knorr von Rosenroth, Kabbalah Denudata (Sulzbach, 1677), 4. I follow the translation of
Coudert, The Impact of the Kabbalah, 114–15.
92
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
Christological interpretations, taken from the book Mateh Moshe (The Rod of
Moses), the zohar interpretation of Norrelius’s teacher, the converted Jew
Johan Kemper (formerly Moshe Ben Aharon Cohen of Krakow).27 The zohar
passages and interpretations from Kemper’s work are incorporated in the
original language (Aramaic and Hebrew) and translated into Latin, with speciic
comments by Norrelius, who opened his book with a lengthy introduction that
includes a Latin translation of the famous liturgical poem Bar Yochai by Rabbi
Shimon Ibn Lavi. Norrelius’s book was printed a second time, in a French
translation, in the beginning of the twentieth century.28
Norrelius also accepted the early dating of the zohar and its attribution to
Rabbi Shimon bar Yochai (whom he identiies as Simeon the righteous, who,
according to the Gospel of Luke, received the baby Jesus into his arms).29
Norrelius, like his teacher Kemper, assumed that the zohar contained original
Jewish doctrines identical to the teachings of early Christianity. Like von
Rosenroth and his circle, Norrelius had missionary aspirations in translating
the zohar. In the opening pages of his book he declared that it was intended
for both Jews and Christians and as aforesaid, he printed the zoharic passages
and Kemper’s Christological interpretation in the original language as well. In
the introduction he stated that his aim was to spread among the Jews – and
strengthen among the Christians – belief in the trinity, and called upon the
Jews to recognize that the Christians maintained the pure and true belief of
their forefathers.30 Norrelius tried, unsuccessfully, to print the translation of
the New Testament in Hebrew written by Kemper. This is a further similarity
between Norrelius and Kemper’s activities in Uppsala in the beginning of the
eighteenth century, and the project of Knorr von Rosenroth and his circle in
Sulzbach in the late seventeenth century.
Norrelius’s translation project was connected to the Sabbatean movement.
27
See H. J. Schoeps, “Rabbi Johan Kemper in Uppsala,” Kyrkohistorisk Årsskrift 46 (1945):
146–75; Shifra Asulin, “Another Look at Sabbateanism, Conversion, and Hebraism in
Seventeenth-Century Europe: Scrutinizing the Character of Johan Kemper of Uppsala, or
Moshe Son of Aharon of Krakow” (Hebrew), in The Sabbatean Movement and Its Aftermath:
Messianism, Sabbateanism and Frankism, ed. Rachel Elior, vol. 2 (Jerusalem: The Hebrew
University, 2001), 423–70; Elliot Wolfson, “Messianism in the Christian Kabbalah of Johann
Kemper,” in Millenarianism and Messianism in the Early Modern World, eds. M. Goldish and R. H
Popkin (Dordrecht: Kluwer, 2001), 139–87.
28
The French translation by Jean de Pauly was published as Aurore de la Foi Orthodoxe des
Anciens Cabbalistes in the occultist journal, Le Voile D’Isis, vol. 38, 1933, by Paul Vulliaud. I will
expand on other translations of the zohar by de Pauly and Vulliaud later on.
29
Andreas Norrelius, Phosphoros Orthodoxae Fidei Veterum Cabbalistarum (Amsterdam, 1720), 6.
30
Ibid., 22.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
93
The zoharic texts that he translated are taken from the book Mateh Moshe, by
Johan Kemper, who was a Sabbatean prior to his conversion. Shifra Asulin
demonstrates that Kemper did not abandon his Sabbatean ideology after his
conversion, and several Sabbatean concepts and doctrines can be found in
his commentary.31 Norellius probably was not aware of his teacher’s hidden
Sabbatean agenda. Yet, interestingly, he noticed the similarities between his
teacher’s doctrines and those of the Sabbatean Nehemia Hiya Hayun in his
book Oz le-Elohim (a chapter of which Norrelius translated into Latin).32
Additional translations of the zohar into Latin from the beginning of
the eighteenth century are found in the anthology by Gottfried Christoph
Sommer, Specimen Theologiae Soharicae (Gothae, 1734). Similar to the translations
of von Rosenroth and Norrellius, there was also a missionary ChristianKabbalistic motive behind Sommer’s translation. Sommer, who divided his
book into twenty sections based on various Christian dogmas, believed in
the compatibility between the zohar and the New Testament, and included
articles from the Zohar in his book that he felt were in afinity with Christian
doctrines. As I will show later on, a translation of Sommer’s book into German
was included in Friedrich Christoph Oetinger’s Offentliches Denkmal der Lehrtafel
Prinzessin Antonia, printed in Tübingen in 1763. Translations into German and
Yiddish, based on Sommer’s book, appeared in the nineteenth century.
Knorr von Rosenroth’s translations were also the basis for translations of the
zohar into English and French in the late nineteenth and early twentieth centuries,
the same period in which Norellius’s book was translated into French. Hence,
these Latin translations of the zohar, mainly von Rosenroth’s but also those of
Norellius and Sommer, became the central source of acquaintance with the zohar
in European non-Jewish culture up to the beginning of the twentieth century.
Yiddish and Ladino Translations of the Zohar
I would like to turn back to Jewish translations of the zohar. In the period
that Christian Kabbalists were translating the zohar to Latin, several translations appeared in Jewish vernacular languages – Yiddish and Ladino (Jewish
Spanish). As mentioned, several short passages, mostly tales, from the zohar
had already been published in Yiddish translation in the late seventeenth
century. A more comprehensive translation of zoharic articles in Yiddish, the
31
32
Shifra Asulin, “Another Look at Sabbateanism,” 438–58.
Norrelius, Phosphoros Orthodoxae Fidei Veterum Cabbalistarum, 22–23, 353.
94
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
book Nahalat Tzvi, was irst printed in the beginning of the eighteenth century
(Frankfurt-am-Main, 1711). The translation written by Rabbi zelig Chotsh was
published by his great-grandson, the Sabbatean sage Rabbi Tzvi Hirsh Chotsh.
This translation was published in numerous editions in the eighteenth and
nineteenth centuries, some under the title Nofet Tsuim.
In contrast to the translations of the zohar into Hebrew and Latin intended
for educated circles that were proicient in these high culture languages,
translations of the zohar into Yiddish were intended for wider circles, including
women. Thus, the title page of the book Nahalat Tzvi carried the following
verse: Assemble the people, men, women and little ones and the sojourner within your gates
so that they may hear (Deuteronomy 31:12).
Like the editors of anthologies of zohar articles translated to Hebrew,
Rabbi Tzvi Chotsh and those who approbated his book deined the Zoharic
articles in Nahalat Tzvi as “peshatim” (simple meanings) and “words of moral.”
Rabbi Naphtali Hakohen Katz of Frankfurt wrote in his approbation: “He
[i.e., Chotsh] wishes to print here peshatim and words of moral from the Book
of zohar in the language of Ashkenaz [i.e., Yiddish] to merit the masses, the
young and the old, the women and the simple people…”33
Alongside the claim that the texts included in the book Nahalat Tzvi belong
to the peshat level of the zohar, Rabbi Naphtali Hakohen Katz presents another
justiication for printing the Zohar in Yiddish:
If I would have said that it should not be printed in the language of Ashkenaz,
because of the holiness of the zohar…it is to the contrary. Rabbi Shimon bar
Yochai himself wrote in a foreign language, the language of translation [i.e.,
Aramaic] spoken at that time by the whole nation. And although there are reasons
and deep explanations for his writing in the language of translation (as is explained
in revealed and concealed books), nonetheless, he was not concerned whether
women and simple people would read it [i.e., the zohar].34
According to Katz’s claim, the Book of zohar – in its entirety – was written
as an esoteric text from the outset and therefore its distribution should not
be prevented but encouraged through translation into the colloquial language.
A different justiication for the translation of the Zohar into Yiddish was
raised by Rabbi Wolf of Dessau, who claimed in his approbation to Nahalat Tzvi
that the secrets of the Kabbalah should be revealed in the days of the Messiah:
33
Chotsh, Nahalat Tzvi (Frankfurt-am-Main, 1711), Rabbi Naphtali Hakohen Katz of
Frankfurt approbation.
34
Chotsh, Nahalat Tzvi, Rabbi Naphtali Hakohen Katz of Frankfurt approbation.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
95
And now he [i.e., Chotsh], thought to print revealed articles from the Book of
the zohar, in the language understood by women and those whose strength is as
women`s, so that they will know God and the land will be illed with knowledge.
As it is written in the holy Book of the zohar: “When the days of the Messiah are
near, even children will explore the secrets of wisdom.”35
The claim that in the age of redemption the limitations on revealing Kabbalistic
knowledge and teaching the zohar are void, which originates in zoharic
literature itself, appeared in many sources in the irst half of the sixteenth
century and served to justify the irst printings of the Zohar.
The irst translations of the Zohar in Ladino were most likely written during
this same period. These translations, whose original date of writing is unknown,
are found in manuscripts from a later period that were held by the Donmeh
- the Sabbateans who converted to Islam.36 This, added to the fact that Rabbi
Tzvi Chotsh, who printed the translation of the zohar in Yiddish, was also a
Sabbatean, indicates that Sabbatean circles stood behind the spreading of the
Zohar in spoken languages in the irst half of the eighteenth century. Rabbi
Moshe Hagiz’s critique of translating the zohar into spoken languages and
teaching it to young boys and women, published in his book Mishnat Hakhamim
(1733), is also directed, most likely, against Sabbateans who spread the zohar
among the uneducated echelons of society:
Now every empty-headed, mischievous, poor youth takes the Book of zohar in
his hand and goes out with it to the public and boasts throughout the city that he
knows to explain and clarify and translate it from language to language and reads it
before women and children in a foreign language [i.e., vernacular].37
Translations into the vernacular in the eighteenth century were done within the
Sabbatean effort to spread the zohar, which as mentioned held a central position
in their movement. Sabbatean circles were involved in the printing of zoharic literature in the irst half of the eighteenth century and in spreading ritualistic reading
customs; most of the commentaries on the zohar that were printed during this
period were written by Sabbateans.38
35
Chotsh, Nahalat Tzvi, Rabbi Wolf of Dessau approbation (According to zohar, vol. 1, 117b).
A translation of the Idra Rabba is found Jerusalem, National Library MS heb 80917. A
translation of the Idra zuta is found in Jerusalem, National Library MS. heb 80918 and heb 802086.
Translations of zohar passages to Ladino are found also in Cambridge, Harvard MS. Heb 79.
37
Moshe Hagiz, Mishnat Hakhamim, (Wandsbeck, 1733), 56b.
38
Boaz Huss, The Zohar: Reception and Impact (Oxford: The Littman Library of Jewish
Civilzation, 2016), 223–32.
36
96
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
The First translations of the Zohar into German
In the late eighteenth century the irst Zohar translations into a modern
European language appeared. As mentioned above, the German Lutheran
theologian, Friedrich Christoph Oetinger included in his book Die Lehrtafel der
Prinzessin Antonia (Tübingen, 1763) a German translation of zohar texts (done
by his friend Karl Hartman), printed in Latin in the above-mentioned book
by Gottfried Christian Sommer. In 1824, in Berlin, an additional translation
of zoharic texts into German appeared (printed aside the Aramaic original),
also based on Sommer’s anthology, by the Protestant theologian and orientalist
Friedrich August Tholuck, entitled Wichtige Stellen des Rabbinischen Buches Sohar.
In the introduction, Tholuck reiterates the Christian-Kabbalists’ notion that
the zohar contains equivalents of the Christian doctrines.39 The purpose of the
anthology of translations of the zohar, says Tholuck, is to broaden Christian
theologians’ knowledge of Kabbalah and provide them with an arsenal in their
mission to spread the Christian Gospel to the Jews:
From this important book we provide here a series of noteworthy articles that a
Christian scholar, Sommer, has previously collected. They are mainly these, which
greatly agree with the Christian doctrine. The missionaries of the Christian faith
among the Jews will be able to use these to reach, by themselves, a deeper insight
of ancient rabbinical scriptures, and to persuade the Israelites that so much of
what they condemn in Christianity has already been declared by their forefathers
as holy teaching … Through these the distinguished missionary of faith among the
Israelites will be given a new arsenal with which he will enlighten some of the sons
of Abraham and awaken the will of Christian theologians to study the scriptures
of the Jews and to spread Christian knowledge among them.40
Tholuck hoped that the Jews would also read his book and in his introduction
– he also appealed to the “Sons of Israel who are reading these pages.” Later,
in Warsaw, 1844, Tholuck’s anthology was published in a Yiddish translation
by the Anglican mission.41
In the second half of the nineteenth century, additional editions of Tholuck’s
German text were published as well as another edition of Oetinger’s book.42
39
August Tholuck, Wichtige Stellen des Rabbinischen Buches Sohar (Berlin, 1824), 6.
Ibid., 5–6.
41
The zohar texts from this book were reprinted (in the original Aramaic) by Ephraim
Deinard in the framework of his polemics against the zohar, in order to show that it is “full
of Christian opinion.” Ephraim Deinard, Alatah (St Louis, 1927), 51.
42
Gerhard Scholem, Bibliographia Kabbalistica (Leipzig: W. Drugulin 1927), 116, 154.
40
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
97
A new translation into German of the zohar articles translated by Sommer
and Tholuck, prepared by the Jewish convert to Christianity, Johann Heinrich
Raphael Biesenthal, was published in Berlin in 1854 under the title Auszüge Aus
dem Buche Zohar. In the introduction, Biesenthal claims that his translations, based
on the original text, are better than those of his predecessors, notwithstanding
the dificult language, and the “exceptional dark mysticism” of the Zohar.43
During this same period, translations of the Zohar came out for the irst
time in other European languages: English and French. These translations
also relied on Latin versions (though on Knorr von Rosenroth’s rather than
Sommer’s). Nevertheless, as I will show in the following, these translations were
not done out of Christian-missionary ideology, but rather in the framework of
the esoteric and occultist trends of the turn of the nineteenth century. Before
I turn to discuss these translations, I would like to give a short review of a few
translations of the zohar done by Jews in the nineteenth century.
Jewish Translations of the Zohar in the Nineteenth Century
In contrast to the eighteenth century, during which, as we saw above, several
translations of the zohar were written in Yiddish and Ladino, throughout
most of the nineteenth century very few translations were written that were
intended for the Jewish audience. In the 1830s, Rabbi Elyakim Milzahagi of
Brody prepared a large translation in Hebrew, which was part of a comprehensive commentary to the zohar that he wrote which was never printed and was
lost.44 Milzahagi was afiliated with the Haskalah (Jewish enlightenment) circles
in Galicia, and his text was, most likely, the irst Zohar translation written in
the framework of the Jewish enlightenment movement. In 1859, an anthology
of zohar texts in Ladino, Sefer Leket HaZohar in Ladino, prepared by Avraham
Ben Moshe Finzi, was published in Belgrade. The translation included 248
zohar articles, mainly tales and moral sayings. Translations of zohar texts
in French appeared in the book by Michel Weill, Chief Rabbi of Algeria, La
Morale du Judaïsme, printed in Paris in 1875.45 As we will see in the following,
we see the irst translations of Zohar texts into French (based on the Latin
43
Johann Heinrich Biesebthal, Auszüge aus dem Buche Sohar mit deutscher Übersetzung (Berlin:
P.G Löw, 1854). I am grateful to George Kohler, who helped me read the introduction.
44
Elyakim Milzahagi mentions this in his unprinted book found in MS Jerusalem 40121 Heb, 4a.
45
zoharic texts translated into French were included earlier in a book by the scholar Adolphe
Franck, La kabbale ou, La philosophie religieuse des Hébreux that was published in Paris in 1843
(and translated a year later into German by Adolf Jelinek).
98
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
translations of Knorr von Rosenroth) at about the same time in non-Jewish
occultist circles as well.
In 1887, the irst – and as far as I know the only – translation of the Zohar
in Jewish-Arabic was printed in Pune, India. Differing from the anthology of
zohar texts in Ladino that included texts perceived as peshat, the translation
printed in Pune is of one of the most esoteric portions of the zohar, the
Idra Zuta. The book, entitled Idra Zuta, or the Lesser Holy Assembly, Translated
from the Aramaic Chaldee into Arabic [in Hebrew Characters], was translated and
printed by Avraham David Ezekiel, a member of the Iraqi Jewish community
in India. The translation of the Idra Zuta was the irst of nine Arabic-Jewish
publications (most of them translations of Kabbalistic texts. including Sefer
Shomer Emunim and Sefer Yetzira) that were printed by Ezekiel in the printing
house he founded in Pune, in the years 1878–1888.46 The Translation of the
Idra Zuta into Jewish-Arabic enraged the rabbis of Jerusalem, Hebron and
Baghdad. A decree against Ezekiel’s translation, signed by the chief rabbis of
Jerusalem, was published in the Jerusalem Hebrew newspaper, Havatzelet:
We are thus obliged to decree in the power of the Divine Presence (Shechina)
which never left the Wailing Wall, and in the power of the holy Torah, that no son
of Israel should be allowed to read the above mentioned printed Idrot in other
languages, under any circumstance. Furthermore, every person called by the name
of Israel, has the obligation to make an effort to keep and hide the translations in a
place where no foreign hand can reach them, and eliminate them from the world.47
In response, Ezekiel wrote the rabbis a letter in which he defended his translation.48 Ezekiel asserted that far from being forbidden to translate the Idra, it is
“a religious obligation (mizvah) to study and teach and write and translate it into
Arabic, which is the accustomed language amongst us.”49 He relies on a passage
from Hayim Vital’s introduction to Etz Hayim, to the effect that it is a mizvah
to reveal kabbalistic secrets of the Zohar, as this revelation will bring forth redemption. He adduces several examples of kabbalistic texts written in foreign
languages, or translated into them. He writes, deiantly, that the decree did not
Boaz Huss, “The Suis From America: Kabbalah and Theosophy in Puna in the Late
Nineteenth Century,” in Kabbalah and Modernity: Interpretations, Transformations, Adaptations, eds.
Boaz Huss, Marco Pasi, Kocku von Stuckrad (Leiden: Brill, 2010), 167–93.
47
Havazelet 18 (18), 24 February 1888 (12 Adar 5648), 138–39.
48
The letter was published by Pinchas Grayevsky, “On the Translation of the Idrot to
Arabic” (Hebrew), Meginzei Yerushalaim 2 (1930): 15–16.
49
Ibid.
46
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
99
achieve its goal, but on the contrary enhanced the sales of the book, which was
now out of stock. As mentioned, contrary to most of the prior translations into
Jewish languages, which avoided translating the esoteric portions of zoharic
literature, Ezekiel chose to translate and print one of the most secretive texts
of the Zohar. Why did Ezekiel choose this speciic portion and bring upon
himself the wrath of the rabbis of Baghdad, Hebron and Jerusalem?
The answer to this lies in Ezekiel’s membership in the Theosophical Society
and his connections with its leaders, Madame Helena P. Blavatsky and Colonel
Henry Steel Olcott.50 Blavatsky and other members of the Theosophical
Society (and, as will be shown later, also members of other Western esoteric
movements that were active during the same period) were greatly interested in
the Kabbalah. Because their knowledge of it was drawn mostly from the Christian Kabbalistic tradition, the zoharic texts that they were acquainted with
were mainly texts owing to Knorr von Rosenroth’s translation. In exactly the
same year that Ezekiel’s Jewish-Arabic translation of the Idra Zuta was printed
in Pune, an English translation of the text was printed by Samuel Liddel MacGregor Mathers, who was also afiliated with the Theosophical Society. The
connection between the two translations is revealed by the fact that in both the
Idra Zuta is translated into English as “The Lesser Holy Assembly.”
Western Esoteric Translations of the Zohar into English and French
Samuel Liddel MacGregor Mathers, the irst translator of the Zohar into
English, was a member of various English occultist groups and one of the
founders of the Hermetic Order of the Golden Dawn. In London, in 1887,
he published English translations of the zohar, based on Knorr von Rosenroth’s Latin translation of Sifra Detzniuta, Idra Raba and Idra Zuta. Similar to the
Christian Kabbalists of the Renaissance and Baroque periods, Mathers saw in
the zohar a means of unveiling the original message of Christianity. However,
Mathers, like other esotericists of his period, opposed institutionalized Christianity, and hoped for a spiritual Christian revolution that the translation of the
zohar would serve to advance:
I say fearlessly to the fanatics and bigots of the present day. You have cast down the
Sublime and Ininite one from His throne, and in His stead have placed the demon
of unbalanced force; you have substituted a deity of disorder and of jealousy for
a God of order and love; you have perverted the teaching of the cruciied One.
50
Boaz Huss, “The Suis From America,” 167–93.
100
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
Therefore at this present time an English translation of the Qabbalah is almost a
necessity, for the zohar has never before been translated into the language of this
country nor as far as I am aware, into any modern European vernacular.51
During the same period additional English translations of the zohar were
printed in the United States; these were written from a similar perspective by
the independent scholar and freemason Isaac Myer.52 In contrast to Mathers,
Myer did not base his translations on those of Knorr von Rosenroth, rather
he translated from the original Aramaic. His zohar translations were included
in his book Qabbalah: The Philosophical Writings of Solomon Ben Yehuda Ibn Gabirol,
printed in Philadephia in 1888. Similar to Mathers, Myer accepted the antiquity
of the Kabbalah in general and the zohar in particular, however he placed less
of an emphasis on the Kabbalah’s similarity to original Christianity, and instead
emphasized its similarity to Asia’s “Ancient Wisdom Religion”:
The Qabbalah of the Hebrews is undoubtedly of great antiquity, a reminiscence
of an ancient “Wisdom Religion” of Asia, for we ind its doctrines, in germ, in the
ancient Buddhist, Sanskrit, zen, and Chinese books, also examples of its peculiar
exegesis in the occult book, Genesis, and in Jeremiah. The present text-book of
the Qabbalah is the Sepher ha-zohar, Book of Illumination, or Splendor.53
English translations from the zohar, which were prepared by Nurho de
Manhar (also known as William Williams), a member of The Golden Dawn,
were published in the early twentieth century in the occult journal, The Word,
edited by Harold Percival in New York.54
In the late nineteenth and early twentieth centuries several translations of
the zohar were printed in French; these were also written in the framework of
increasing interest in esoteric and occult teachings at the turn of the century.
The irst of these translations is that of the Idra Raba by Eliphas Lévi (Alphonse
Louis Constant, 1810–1875), which is based on Knorr von Rosenroth’s Kabbalah
Denudata. Lévi’s translation was included in Le Livre des Splendeurs, which was
51
Samuel Liddel MacGregor Mathers, The Kabbalah Unveiled (London: G. Redway, 1887), 2.
Many more translations from the zohar into English, based on earlier translations, as
well as on the original zohar, are found in Myer`s archive in New-York public library. http://
archives.nypl.org/mss/2090#detailed (accessed 15.11.2016).
53
Isaac Myer, Qabbalah: The Philosophical Writings of Solomon Ben Yehuda Ibn Gabirol (Philadelphia:
The author, 1888), 439.
54
The translations were published in the volumes of The Word printed 1906–1913 (vols,
4–12). The translations, compiled by John H. Drais, were reprinted in Nurho de Manhar, Zohar:
Bereshith, Genesis, and expository translation from Hebrew (San Diego: Wizards Bookshelf, 1978).
52
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
101
printed in 1894 by his follower Papus (Gérard Encausse, 1865–1919). Eliphas
Lévi emphasized the antiquity of the Kabbalah, which according to him was
known to Jesus and John the Apostle (but not to Paul, who only had a notion
of its existence).55 According to Lévi’s outlook, the zohar contains the universal
secrets of revelation of which Judaism informed the world, secrets shared with
Freemasonry, Gnosticism, the Templars and other occult movements.56 Eliphas
Lévi ’s translation of the Idra Rabba was intended to spread the universal gospel
of the Kabbalah, which would unite Jews and Christians, remove ignorance and
fanaticism, and serve as a basis for world peace:
Study of the Kabbalah will turn the Jews and Christians into a single and united
nation. Ignorance and fanaticism will in vain aspire to perpetuate war. Peace is
already presented in the name of philosophy, and tomorrow it will be implemented by religion, liberated from the control of the desires of humanity. We must
prepare for this tremendous event by revealing the concealed treasures of the
Jewish wisdom to men of science. And for this we are publishing the translation
and commentary of the theogeny of the zohar found in the Sifra Detzniuta.57
In 1895, a year after the printing of Eliphas Lévi’s Le Livre des Splendeurs, French
translations from other zoharic units in the Kabbalah Denudata were published
by Henri Chateau, a member of L`Ordre Kabbalistique de la Rose-Croix, with
an introduction by Papus.58 A translation of the Sifra Detzniuta entitled La Clef
du Zohar by Albert Jounet (1863–1923), a Christian socialist and a member of
the French Theosophical Society, was printed in Paris in 1909. Jounet, whose
translation was written from an occult-Christian perspective, assumed that
despite the zohar’s being written in the thirteenth century, it contains ancient
doctrines that concord with Christian esoteric teachings and with the Egyptian,
Assyrian, Babylonian, Persian, Chinese, Indian, Celtic and Greek mysteries.59
Following Lévi, Albert Jounet also viewed spreading the zohar as a means of
mending the rift between Jews and Christians. However, differing from Lévi
and other occultists, Jounet presented a clear Christian missionary position,
very close to that of the Christian Kabbalists from earlier periods. According
to Jounet, becoming acquainted with the zohar would enable Christians to
acknowledge the esoteric truths found in the Old Testament, and the Jews to
55
56
57
58
59
Eliphas Lévi, Le Livre des Splendeurs (Paris: Chamuel, 1894), 2.
Ibid., 3–4.
Ibid., 6–7.
Henri Chateau, Le Zohar (Paris: Chamuel, 1895).
Albert Jounet, La Clef du Zohar (Paris: Bibliothèque Chacornac, 1909), 1.
102
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
understand the truths of Christianity.60 Then “the Jews and the Christians will
unite in prayer to Jesus, who dwells in eternity and awaits their reconciliation,
to reveal his glory to the world.”61 Jounet concluded his introduction with
“the Kabbalistic promise that the Messiah will come to this world because
of the Book of zohar.”62 Despite his great admiration of the zohar, “whose
religious and philosophical sublimity cannot be contested”,63 Jounet displayed
an orientalist ambivalence regarding the zohar:
Like most of the Oriental books, and particularly those written through initiation,
the zohar appears chaotic. First of all, it is compiled of varied works, mixed up
without any order. Secondly, these works do not adhere to the logical methods
of the West. The authors of the Orient follow the rules of musical composition
more than they do the rules of literary composition.64
As we will see in the following, similar orientalist ambivalence is also expressed in the
writings of Jewish scholars who studied and translated the zohar at the same period.
The irst comprehensive translation of the Zohar into French (and into a
European language in general), was printed in Paris by Emile Lafuma between
1906–1912. The author of the translation, Jean de Pauly – who claimed he was
an Albanian aristocrat but was most likely the notorious converted Jew, Paul
Meyer – died in 1903 before his translation was printed.65 De Pauly accepted
the early origins of the zohar and, following the Christian Kabbalists who
preceded him, claimed that the zohar contains Christian doctrines. In his
words, the zohar is: “An appropriate book to enlighten men and to contribute
to the glory of God… There is nothing better suited to achieve this goal than
a translation of the zohar whose doctrines, even if these precede Christianity,
reinforce the Christian truths.”66 The publisher, LaFume, who shared the view
that the zohar contains Christian doctrines,67 also expressed ambivalence
60
Ibid., 3–4.
Ibid., 4.
62
Ibid.
63
Ibid., 2.
64
Ibid.
65
Scholem, Bibliographia Kabbalistica, 120; Paul Fenton, “La Cabbale et l’academie,” Pardes,
19–20 (1994): 229; Dominique Bourel, “Notes sur la première traduction française du zohar,”
in Jüdisches Denken in einer Welt ohne Gott, Festschrift für Stéphane Mosès, eds. J. Mattern, G. Motzkin
and S. Sandbank (Berlin: Vorwerk 8, 2000), 120–29.
66
De Pauly wrote this in a letter to LaFume, dated 1900, that is quoted in Bourel, “Notes sur
la première traduction,” 125.
67
Jean de Pauly, Le Livre de la splendeur: Doctrine ésotérique des Israélites, (Paris: LaFume, 1906), 4.
61
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
103
toward it. LaFume compared the zohar to a great river at whose source (the
ancient Jewish-Christian tradition) the water is pure, but which becomes
polluted with erroneous doctrines and traditions as time goes on.68 Despite
this, he claimed the enlightened reader could ind “pure lumps of gold and
precious stones” in its waters.69
When it was published, De Pauly’s translation caused great reverberations,
and throughout the twentieth century several anthologies of the zohar in
French were based on it.70 De Pauly also translated into French the anthology
of zoharic articles in Latin by the Swedish Hebraist, Andreas Norellius, which
was discussed above. The translation was printed in 1933 by Paul Vulliaud, in
Le Voile d’Isis under the heading: “Aurore de la Foi Orthodoxe des Anciens
Cabalistes.” In 1930, Vulliaud published a translation of the Sifra Detzniuta,
based on de Pauly’s translation.71
Jewish Neo-Romantic and Zionist Translations
In the late nineteenth and early twentieth centuries several Jewish European
scholars worked on translating the Zohar into various languages, inluenced
by turn-of-the-century neo-romantic and orientalist perspectives. As we will
see in the following, some of these translations integrated Western esoteric
perceptions of the Kabbalah with a Jewish nationalist approach.
Naphtali Herz Imber (1856–1909), a Hebrew poet whose song “ha-Tikva”
(“the Hope”) became the anthem of the zionist movement (and later of the
State of Israel), translated several zoharic passages into English. These translations were published posthumously in his book, Treasures of Two Worlds.72
Imber, who was associated with theosophical and occult circles, related that
the reform rabbi, Shlomo Schindler, and the president of the Boston branch
of the Theosophical Society, George Ayers, proposed in 1893 to fund a complete translation of the zohar into English.73 Similar to other Jewish nationalist
68
Ibid., 5.
Ibid.
70
Bourel, “Notes sur la première traduction,” 127–28. De Pauly’s translation was reprinted
in Paris in 1970.
71
Paul Vulliaud, Traduction intégrale du Siphra Di-Tzeniutha, le livre du secret (Paris: E. Nourry, 1930)
72
Naphtali Herz Imber, Treasures of Two Worlds: Unpublished Legends and Traditions of the Jewish
Nation (Los Angeles: Citizens printing shop: 1910), 76–110.
73
Imber referred to this plan in an article he wrote in the journal he edited, Uriel, published
(in only one volume) in 1895. See Naphtali Herz Imber, “What is the Cabbala?” Uriel 1(1),
(1895): 19. See Boaz Huss, “Forward to the East: Naphatali Herz Imber’s Perception of
69
104
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
thinkers, who will be discussed later, Imber viewed the Kabbalah in general
and the zohar in particular as a vital spiritual Jewish tradition, juxtaposed to
the dogmatic rabbinical tradition: “That book is in opposition to Rabbinical
tradition: as it explains the laws according to their esoteric meanings and spiritual solutions, which are in conlict with the dim, dogmatic dead letter.”74
Within the context of large projects which translated Jewish literature into
German, such as Buber and Rontzweig’s translation of the Old Testament and
Buber’s translations from Hassidic literature, several translations of the zohar
appeared. Christian Ginsburg related that Ignatz Stern, a Jewish Hungarian
scholar active in the late nineteenth century, prepared a German translation
of the Sifra Detzniuta, and of the Idra Raba and the Idra Zuta, which remained
archived in manuscripts.75 In 1913, Ernst Müller and Shmuel Hugo Bergman,
who were both active in the zionist movement and later became interested in
Rudolph Steiner’s Anthroposophy, published translations of several zoharic
passages at the end of the volume Vom Judentum, prepared by the zionist student
union of Prague, Bar Kochba.76 Müller published further translations of zoharic
articles in the journal Der Jude, between 1913 and 1920.77 In 1920, he published
a book about the zohar including translations, and in 1932 he published an
anthology of zoharic articles translated into German.78 An additional anthology
of zoharic articles translated into German was published in Berlin by Jankew
(Jakob) Seidmann, who was also associated with zionist circles.79
In the same period, Jewish scholars in Eastern Europe began to translate zoharic texts into Hebrew and Yiddish. In 1921, in the second part of
his Hebrew article “The Key to the Book zohar”, published in parts in the
journal Ha-Tekufa in Warsaw, Hillel zeitlin published an anthology of translated zoharic texts with a commentary. zeitlin introduces his anthology with
an enthusiastic description of the zohar:
What is the zohar? The zohar is a sublime, divine soul that descended suddenly
Kabbalah,” Journal of Modern Jewish Studies 12, no. 3 (2013): 404.
Imber, “What is the Cabbala?” 16.
75
Christian D. Ginsburg, The Kabbalah: Its Doctrines, Development, and Literature (London: Longmans, Green, Reader and Dyer, 1955), 230.
76
Vom Judentum: Ein Sammelbuch (Leipzig: K. Wolff, 1913), 274–84.
77
Eleonore Lappin, Der Jude 1916–1928 (Tubingen: Mohr Siebeck, 2000), 362.
78
Ernst Müller, Der Sohar und Seine Lehre: Einleitung in die Gedankenwelt der Kabbalah (Wein &
Berlin: R. Löwit, 1920); Ernst Müller, Der Sohar: Das Heilige Buch Der Kabbalah, Nach dem Urtext
(Wien: Heinrich Glanz, 1932).
79
Jankew Seidman, Aus dem heiligen Buch Sohar des Rabbi Schimon ben Jochai (Berlin: Im Welt, 1932).
74
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
105
from the world of emanation down to earth in order to be revealed to the eyes
of man in millions of lights and shadows, colours and hues. God, blessed be He,
picked one precious stone from his crown and threw it down, and the stone shattered and scattered, sowing myriads of sparks, elating, rejoicing, and delighting
in myriads of shapes and shades that emerged from eternity to illuminate all the
dark corners and to satisfy all that craves and yearns for light; and to sustain and
warm everything that had been killed by the chill of science and the darkness of
ignorance, and the blindness, and the burden of nature, and the malice and the
hardship, and the cruelty of mankind. The zohar was revealed to the people of
Israel and to the entire world through visions, parables, tales, and lashing words,
piercing thoughts, the heights of heaven, the depths of the abyss, the glory of
the stars, the language of divine heights, the murmur of eternal trees, the depth
of the forest thicket80
However zeitlin’s position on the zohar is not unequivocal. His neo-romantic
enthusiasm from the zohar is ambivalent and coupled with disdain, reminiscent of the attitude of Knorr von Rosenroth and other non-Jewish translators
of the zohar:
The zohar – a mixture of the deepest of the deep truisms and fantasies, straight
and crooked lines, straight and misleading paths, it, perfect, and clear sketches
and alien and strange ones, the strength of a lion and the weakness of a child,
the sound of cascading waters and the whisper of a spring, pits of darkness and
caves of mysteries, brevity, clarity, and acuity of eternal wisdom and prolonged
discussions that continue endlessly, iniltrating one another and interweaving as in
a long and complex dream . . . according to its content and its richness, the zohar
is all – divinity; its exterior often confusing and uncertain.81
In 1922–1923 an anthology of zoharic tales by the writer and historian Azriel
Nathan Frenk (1863–1924) was printed in two volumes. Frenk, like other
thinkers of his time, emphasized the value of the zohar as a national Jewish
text:
This is how the zohar shed its spirit over all of us, over all the sons of our nation;
it was absorbed in our blood, our soul, our spirit and our essence, and it implanted within us gentleness and innocence, mercy and forgiveness, the aspiration for
greatness, glory, magniicence; it ridiculed the sufferings of exile and the tortures
of this world, mocked the obstacles and hurdles in our lives, which characterize
our people and are rarely found among the nations. The zohar planted all these
80
81
Hilel zeitlin, “The Key to the Book zohar” (Hebrew), Ha-Tkufah 6 (1920): 314.
Ibid.
106
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
[traits] in the hearts of those who studied it, and they disseminated it among all
the people of our nation that they led.82
Frenck emphasized the national merit of translating the tales of the zohar
into Hebrew:
The purpose is to allow those who know Hebrew, in abundance or little, at least
something from something out of the beauty found in the zohar, from these
things that became, as said, a part of our soul, our spirit, our essence, we decided
to choose a collection of tales from this book and edit these in a way that they
would be understood by anyone, young and old, those who learned Hebrew and
are used to reading a bit in the Holy books… We believe that in this book we will
successfully integrate the beauty of the books of Kabbalah into the new Hebrew
literature, intended for both those who know and those who are learning Hebrew.83
However, as with zeitlin, there is an apparent ambivalence toward the zohar
in Frenk’s words. Alongside his great admiration for the zohar he claims: “In
addition, there are many mistakes in the Book of zohar, things are twisted,
confused, and missing…”84
During this same period Shmuel Hirsh Setzer (1882–1962), a scholar from
Eastern Europe who later settled in the United States (and immigrated to Israel
in his inal years), published translations of Zoharic articles in Yiddish, and
later on in Hebrew.85 Like other Jewish thinkers of his time, Setzer described
the zohar in enthusiastic, poetic language: “The book of the glory and foundation of the secret doctrine, the Book of zohar, the big and deep mystical
sea, whose waves rise to the heights of human imagination and crash in the
lofty space into splinters of color and shades the eye will never be satiated
from viewing.”86 Setzer relects about his translations:
My main worry was that the gentle intoxicating scent that emanates from the
original words would not dissipate in translation. That nothing would be lost from
the wonderful poetic spirit, from the lofty vividness that they excel in, by its being
82
Azriel Nathan Frenk, Sefer agadot hazohar (Warsaw: Achiasaf, 1923–4), vol. 1, 12 (Hebrew).
Ibid., 14–15.
84
Ibid., 14.
85
Setzer’s translations of the zohar into Yiddish were published in the journal Das Wort,
volumes 1–4 (1921–1924). zoharic articles translated into Hebrew were printed by Setzer in
volumes 24–23 and 38–39 of the journal Ha-Doar (1954). These translations were reprinted after
he died in Shemuel Tsevi Setzer, Selected Writings (Tel Aviv: Mahbarot le-Sifrut, 1966), 110–17.
86
Ibid., 113.
83
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
107
poured from vessel to vessel. That as far as possible nothing would be lost from
the enormous impression the words in their original form can have on the reader
even when these will be read from my translation.87
Alongside these scholars one must also note the Hebrew author and Nobel
Prize laureate, Shmuel Yosef Agnon (1887–1970), who included passages of
the zohar translated into Hebrew in his book Yamim Noraim (Days of Awe),
irst printed in Jerusalem in 1938.
In the interval between the two world wars, two publishing houses initiated
a comprehensive undertaking of translating the zohar into Hebrew. Working
in Berlin, the national poet Hayim Nahman Bialik (1873–1934) introduced a
plan to publish the zohar in Hebrew with Dvir publishing house, however the
plan was never consummated.88 At the same time Hillel zeitlin began a project
of translating the zohar into Hebrew, initiated by Ayanot publishing house,
also operating in Berlin. According to Simon Rawidowicz who managed the
publishing house, translation of the Zohar was among the irst priorities of
Ayanot, who viewed this undertaking as “a unique national obligation.”89 In
the end, only the translation of the introduction to the zohar was published,
after zeitlin perished in the Holocaust.90
Increasing interest in the Zohar and in Kabbalah in general in the irst half
of the twentieth century led to competition between different translators.
This competition was expressed in Hillel zeitlin’s critique of the unbecoming
rabbinical language used by Rabbi Yudel Rosenberg in his translation of the
zohar, Sefer Shaarei Zohar Torah (which will be discussed in the following).
He also criticized Rosenberg’s (whom he refers to as “Rosentzweig”!) choice
to only translate the Zohar partially: “This translation has no scientiic or
religious value. The rabbi who translated it (his name is Rosentzweig) only
collected a few homilies from each portion and translated them into imprecise
and unbecoming rabbinical Hebrew.”91 zeitlin wrote an even harsher critique
of the anthology by Azriel Nathan Frenk: “Its value is much less than that
of the book Shaarei Zohar Torah, because it contains only a few pages and has
absolutely nothing in it; there are only a few parts translated from a few easy
87
Ibid., 73.
Jonatan Meir, “Hillel zeitlin’s zohar: the History of a Translation and Commentary
Project” (Hebrew), Kabbalah: Journal for the Study of Jewish Mystical Texts 10 (2004): 124.
89
HaMetzuda 1 (1942): 36.
90
Ibid., 40–81.
91
Hillel zeitlin, “A letter to Simon Rawidowicz,” HaMetzuda, vols. 3–4 (1945): 340.
88
108
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
places. It is only suitable for young people.”92 On the other hand, Bialik, who
as mentioned aspired to do a translation of the zohar for Dvir, raised doubts
before Rawidowicz whether zeitlin was the best person to translate the zohar,
and claimed, most likely in an attempt to thwart zeitlin’s translation project,
that he had a translation in hand, ready to go to print!93
The Soncino Zohar Translation
As we saw above, in the framework of increasing interest in the Kabbalah in
general and the zohar in particular in the beginning of the twentieth century,
the zohar was translated in its entirety into French by the converted Jew Jean de
Pauly. At that time, only the zoharic units published in Latin in Rosenroth’s Kabbalah Denudata had been translated into English, by Samuel MacGregor Mathers,
along with a few additional zoharic articles translated by Isaac Myer and Naftali
Hertz Imber. A comprehensive edition of the zohar in English was prepared
for the irst time only in the 1930s, by the Soncino Press. The translators were
the Jewish scholars Maurice Simon and Harry Sperling, and Paul Phillip Levertoff, a Jewish-born convert to Christianity. They were assisted by the scholar,
rabbi, and Theosophist Joshua Abelson, who wrote the introduction to the
edition. In his introduction, Abelson described the zohar as “a compilation
of a mass of material drawn from many strata of Jewish and non-Jewish mystical thought and covering numerous centuries.”94 Abelson also expressed the
national, neo-romantic idea that the zohar in particular and the Kabbalah in
general represent the mystical spirit that grants vitality to rabbinical Judaism:
Indeed herein may be said to lie the undying service which the Cabbalism has
rendered Judaism, whether as creed or as life. A too literal interpretation of the
words of Scripture giving Judaism the appearance of being nothing more than an
ordered legalism, an apotheosis of the “letter which killeth” a formal and petriied
system of external commands bereft of all spirit and denying all freedom of the
individual – these have been, and are still in some quarters, the blemishes and
shortcomings cast in the teeth of Rabbinic Judaism. The supreme rebutter of such
taunts and objections is Cabbalah. The arid ield of Rabbinism was always kept
well watered and fresh by the living streams of Cabbalistic lore.95
92
Ibid., 341.
Simon Rawidowicz, My Conversations with Bialek (Jerusalem: Dvir, 1983), 41, 46 (Hebrew).
94
Maurice Simon, Harry Sperling and Paul Levertoff, The Zohar, vol. 1 (London: Soncino,
1931–34), xi.
95
Ibid., xiv.
93
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
109
However, Abelson too expresses an ambivalent stance, characteristic of the
modernist scholars, in describing the zohar as “a veritable storehouse of
anachronisms, incongruities and surprises.”96
The Soncino edition was the main source of acquaintance with the zohar
for the English speaking world in the twentieth century. Only in the past
few decades, as we will see, have additional comprehensive translations into
English been done, with the intention of replacing this edition.
The Hebrew Translations of Rabbi Yehuda Yudel Rosenberg and
Rabbi Yehuda Ashlag
In the same period, the zohar was also translated into Hebrew among traditional circles in response to the awakening interest in the zohar among Jewish
scholars and zionists (and perhaps also in response to the interest non-Jews
showed in the Kabbalah and the zohar at the time). Rabbi Yehuda Yudel
Rosenberg (1859–1935), a Hassidic Polish rabbi who immigrated to Canada in
1913, translated large portions of the zoharic literature (a translation which,
recall, won a belittling critique from Hillel zeitlin). Rosenberg began his project
of translating and editing the zohar in Hebrew in Poland and continued in
Canada. He edited the zoharic articles in the order of the Torah portions, and
printed his translation with a short commentary called Ziv HaZohar (the light
of the zohar), alongside the Aramaic source. Like the traditional translators
preceding him, Rosenberg refrained from translating the more esoteric sections of the zohar, such as Sifra Detzniuta and the Idrot. The irst volume was
published in Warsaw in 1906 and the complete translation was published later
in Montreal and New York, between 1924–1930.97 In the introduction to his
book, Rosenberg repeats the claims justifying the spreading of the zohar that
were used in earlier periods, irst and foremost the claim that the Zohar will be
revealed in the inal generation before redemption: “It is explained…that the
Book of Zohar will be revealed in a new and celebrated way in the inal generation, and this revelation is its spreading among the general public of Israel.”98
Rosenberg’s project of translating the zohar was related to the national
Jewish awakening of the time, the increase in the scope of Hebrew readers,
and the publication of secular literature in Hebrew. Rosenberg presents his
96
Ibid., xii.
Yehuda Yudel Rosenberg, Sha’arei Zohar Torah (Warsaw: Edelstein, 1906); Zohar Torah al
Hamishah Humshei Torah, vols. 1–5 (Montreal, 1924–5. Reprint New York: Rosalg, 1955).
98
Ibid., vol. 1, 5a.
97
110
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
translation of the zohar as a response to the rise of Jewish secular literature,
which he describes as “books of heresy”:
And we see that because of our numerous transgressions books of heresy are
greatly increasing during these times and their buyers are many. They succeed in
catching souls in their net by glamorizing the books in all kinds of embellishment.
This is principally because these books are written in a clear and easy language.
And the holy books, full of the light of the holy Torah, are set aside in the corner.
In particular the holy book of zohar which is regarded as something that is
obscure, that is not understood, like some kind of amulet.99
Due to the fact that Aramaic was much less known among Jews in the modern
era, Rosenberg asserts that the zohar must be translated into Hebrew: “This
idea did not let my eyes sleep or my soul rest for a long time and forced me
to take upon myself this dificult task to translate to the holy tongue all the
articles and in-depth commentaries from the book of zohar so that they could
be understood by the community of Israel.”100 Despite the fact that the perspective of Rosenberg’s translation is traditional and the background for his
project, he says, is the struggle against secular education, the effect of the national Jewish awakening is apparent in his words. Thus, in his paraphrase of the
words of the sixteenth-century Kabbalist Rabbi Avraham Azulai, Rosenberg
identiies Schechina, the Divine presence, as the national light: “And know that
the main purpose of the Rabbi Shimon bar Yochai in writing the zohar was
that at that time the national light (i.e., the Shechina) was without abundance,
without support and with no assistance.”101
The most comprehensive translation of the zohar into Hebrew written in
the modern period is the famous translation and interpretation of Rabbi Yehuda
Ashlag (1884–1954), who was associated with Hassidic circles in Poland prior
to his emigration to Palestine in 1921. The translation and interpretation of the
zohar, Hasulam (the ladder) is the inal literary undertaking of Rabbi Ashlag,
who previously had worked mainly on writing commentaries on Lurianic texts,
which is the context in which he developed his unique Kabbalistic doctrines.
The Sulam commentary, including the translation of the zohar into Hebrew,
constitutes the apex of Ashlags’ project of spreading the Kabbalah and
eliminating limitations on the study of esoteric aspects of the zohar. In his
99
Ibid.
Rosenberg, Zohar Torah, vol. 1, 5a.
101
Rosenberg, Zohar Torah, vol. 1, 5a. Compare to Abraham Azulai, Hesed le Avraham (Amsterdam:
Imanuel Ataias, 1685), 7a. (There, of course, the words “national light” do not appear.)
100
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
111
introduction to his commentary and translation, Ashlag reiterates the traditional
approach that justiies spreading the Zohar with eschatological reasoning:
And now in this generation, as we are already nearing the end of the last two
thousand years, permission has been granted to reveal his [i.e, Isaac Luria’s] words,
may his memory be blessed, and the words of the zohar to the world in a large
measure, in such a way that from this generation and onward the words of the
zohar will begin to be revealed more and more until the entire measure, as the
blessed God has desired, is revealed.102
Based on this eschatological approach, Rabbi Ashlag justiies the spreading
of the entire zohar to the greater public. Contrary to the Kabbalists in earlier
periods who suficed with translations of the peshat of the zohar, and in contrast to Rabbi Yudel Rosenberg, who refrained from translating the esoteric
portions (as did the translators of the Soncino edition to English), Rabbi
Ashlag interpreted and translated the entire zohar (except for tikkunei zohar
that were translated after he died by his disciple Rabbi Yehuda zvi Brandwin).
In an article he wrote after Hasulam was printed he asserted that the scope of
his commentary and translation project served as proof that his generation
had reached the days of redemption:
And here is the strong proof that our generation has reached the days of the
Messiah because our eyes see that all the previous commentaries of the Book of
Zohar did not even explain ten percent of the most dificult parts of the Zohar
and even the little they did were as abstruse as the words of the zohar itself. In this
generation we have been given the interpretation of Hasulam, which is a complete
interpretation of the words of the zohar and does not leave any ambiguity of
the zohar unexplained. And these explanations are based on the simple analytic
common sense that any average reader can understand. And the fact that the
zohar is revealed in this generation is clear proof that we are already within the
days of the Messiah, at the outset of the same generation about which is said “for
the earth shall be full of the knowledge of the Lord” (Isaiah 11:9).103
It should be noted that although Ashlag was a non-zionist ultra-orthodox
Rabbi, he connected the spreading of the zohar to the revival of the Jewish
nation, and he viewed both the establishment of the State of Israel and the
spreading of the zohar through the interpretation of Hasulam, as evidence of
the beginnings of redemption. Following the above he wrote:
102
103
Yehuda HaLévi Ashlag, Hasulam, vol. 1 (Jerusalem: Itur Rabanim, 1955), 17.
Yehuda ha-Lévi Ashlag, Matan Torah (Jeursalem: Kabbalah Research Center, 1982), 134–35.
112
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
This concedes that it is our generation that is the generation of the days of the
Messiah. And therefore we have been granted redemption of our holy land from
the hands of the gentiles. We have also been granted the revelation of the Book
of zohar. Which is the beginning of implementing the saying “for the earth shall
be full of the knowledge of the Lord” (Isaiah 11:9) “and they shall teach no more
every man his neighbour, and every man his brother, saying: ‘Know the Lord’;
for they shall all know Me, from the least of them unto the greatest of them”
(Jeremiah 31:33).104
The First Academic Translations of the Zohar
Some of the translations of the Zohar that appeared in the irst half of the
twentieth century were written from a modern academic perspective, using
critical, historical and philological tools. Some of the Jewish scholars discussed
above who dealt with translating the zohar (Hillel zeitlin, Nathan Frank and
Joshua Abelson) received academic training. Yet, the most outstanding representative of the academic approach to the study of the Kabbalah and the
zohar in the twentieth century is Gershom Scholem who, similar to other
Jewish scholars previously discussed, turned to the study of Jewish mysticism
under the impact of Zionist ideology and the inluence of the neo-romantic
trends of the early twentieth century. Scholem’s most signiicant studies on
the zohar are his article “Did Rabbi Moses de Leon write the zohar” from
1926 (in which he raises doubts regarding the ascription of the zohar to Rabbi
Moses de Leon),105 and the two chapters dedicated to the book of zohar in his
book Major Trends in Jewish Mysticism, printed for the irst time in 1941, in which
he retracted his opinion and determined that the entire zohar was written by
de Leon.106 As we will see in the following, in addition to these studies Scholem
translated zoharic articles into German, and later on into English.
Despite Scholem reaching the conclusion that the zohar is a pseudoepigraphic work written by Rabbi Moses de Leon, he believed that its value as
one of the most notable books in Jewish literature – and mystical literature in
general – was not blemished. He asserted: “To the streak of adventurousness
which was in Moses de Leon, no less than to his genius, we owe one of the
most remarkable works of Jewish literature and of the literature of mysticism
104
105
106
Ibid., 137.
Gershom Scholem, “Did Moses de León Write the zohar?” Mada’ei hayahadut, 1 (1926): 16–29.
Scholem, Major Trends, 156–204.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
113
in general.”107 Nonetheless, together with his great esteem for the book and
the genius of its author, Scholem is party to the ambivalence regarding the
zohar and Kabbalah which characterized the attitude of many modern Jewish
thinkers. Scholem’s ambivalence regarding the zohar was expressed in his
words on the primitive modes of thought and feeling of the author of the
zohar, alongside profound, contemplative mysticism:
[T]he author’s spiritual life is centred as it were in a more archaic layer of the mind.
Again and again one is struck by the simultaneous presence of crudely primitive
modes of thought and feeling and of ideas whose profound contemplative
mysticism is transparent… a very remarkable personality in whom as in so many
mystics, profound and naive modes of thought existed side by side.108
In 1935, Scholem published his book Die Geheimnisse der Schöpfung, Ein Kapitel
aus dem Sohar (The Secrets of Creation: A Chapter from the zohar), which
included a German translation of the beginning of the book of zohar and
a historical introduction. Later on, in 1949, Scholem published a selection of
zoharic articles translated into English, in partnership with Sherry Abel. Later
this anthology was translated into many other languages, including French,
Spanish, Portuguese, Italian and Dutch.109 The purpose of the small volume of
translations of the zohar to English was, in the words of Scholem: “conveying
to the reader some notion of the power of contemplative fantasy and creative
imagery hidden within the seemingly abstruse thinking of the Kabbalists.”110
Scholem rejected – often with extreme severity – other modern translations
of the zohar, because these did not meet academic criteria or because of their
lack of literary value. In his introduction to his German translation, Scholem
criticized the translations of the zohar that preceded it in German and other
European languages, without mentioning speciics.111 In a review of zohar
translations published in the Encyclopedia Judaica (and later printed in his book
Kabbalah), he criticized the translation of Rabbi Yudel Rosenberg, which he
107
Ibid., 204.
Ibid., 175.
109
Gershom. Scholem, Le Zohar: Le livre de la splendeur, trans. E. Ochs (Paris: Seuil, 1980);
Scholem, El Zohar: el libro del esplendor trans. L. Colomé (México: Berbera, 1984); Scholem,
Zoar: o livro do esplendor, trans. Ana Maria Moreno Bueno (Rio de Janeiro: Editora Renes, 1977);
Scholem, Zohar: Il Libro dello splendore, ed. E. Loewenthal (Torino: Einaudi, 1998); Scholem,
De Zohar, kabbalistische fragmenten, (Amsterdam: J. P. Schoone, 1982).
110
Gershom Scholem, The Book of Splendour: Basic Readings from the Kabbalah (New York:
Schocken, 1976 [1949]), 23.
111
Scholem, Die Geheimnisse der Schöpfung, 19.
108
114
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
claimed lacked all literary value, and the translation of Rabbi Ashlag – for
being too literal and full of errors.112 He also rejected de Pauly’s translation
into French and accused him of “distortions and adulterations.”113 Scholem
approved of the good style of the Soncino translation to English of Sperling,
Simon and Levertoff, but he claimed that it suffered from an incomplete and
erroneous, understanding of the zohar.114
Scholem’s critique of modern zohar translations is an expression of
competition for the zohar’s cultural capital, which increased in the beginning
of the twentieth century among various circles, both Jewish and non-Jewish.
In his critique of other Modern translators of the zohar, Scholem asserted
his and his pupils’ expertise in philological and historical research methods,
expertise that other translators of the zohar at the time did not possess. Hence,
the only modern zohar translation which he was prepared to acknowledge as
valuable, without reservation, was that of his student Isaiah Tishby, which was
translated, according to Scholem, in a “meticulous and ine style.”115
The translations of the zohar into German and English were marginal
aspects of Scholem’s broad activity in Kabbalah research. He found little
interest in spreading the zohar to the broader public and integrating it in contemporary culture. A single attempt to spread the zohar to the broad Israeli
public, in the framework of the modern academic school of Kabbalah research
founded by Scholem, was the above-mentioned anthology of zohar translations done by Scholem’s disciple, Isaiah Tishby, called Mishnat Hazohar (The
Wisdom of the Zohar). The irst volume of the book, which includes thematic
introductions to the zohar accompanied by translations of relevant passages,
was published by the Bialik press in 1949. The second volume was published
in 1961 and a shorter version was published by the Dorot press in 1969.116
The purpose of the book, as described by Tishby in the introduction of the
irst edition was “to open up these hidden riches for the Hebrew reader...in an
ordered and concentrated form.”117 It is interesting to note that even though
Tishby was Gershom Scholem’s pupil and though Mishnat Hazohar relects
112
Gershom Scholem, Kabbalah (Jerusalem: Keter, 1974), 240.
Ibid.
114
Ibid.
115
Ibid.
116
A French translation was published in 1977: Isaiah Tishby, La Kabbale: Anthologie du
Zohar, traduction francaise de I. Rouch (Paris: Berg International, 1977). In 1989, an English
translation was published: Isaiah Tishby, The Wisdom of the Zohar, trans. David Goldstein
(Oxford: The Littman Library, 1989).
117
Tishby, The Wisdom of the Zohar, vol. 1, xxv.
113
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
115
Scholem’s position regarding the zohar to a great extent, the initiative for
this project was not Scholem’s but that of Fishel Lachover and Shmuel Abba
Horodotzky.118 It must also be emphasized that Mishnat Hazohar is an anthology with the goal of presenting the teachings of the zohar in an ordered and
concentrated form, rather than offering the Hebrew reader a comprehensive
translation of the zohar, as Rabbi Yehuda Ashlag began to do at exactly the
same time and which Hillel zeitlin had planned to do previously. From this
perspective, Tishby’s project is close in nature – and completes – Bialik’s cultural ingathering (Kinus) project, which aspired to collect and edit anthologies
of the classics of Jewish literature in a zionist, secular framework.119
Like Scholem, Tishby rejected other modern zohar translations that were
not written from an academic perspective. In a review of zohar translations in
the introduction to Mishnat Hazohar, Tishby wrote about Rabbi Yudel Rosenberg’s translation: “Instead of clarifying the subject matter the translator’s
system forced him to mix up the parashiyot, and to chop up the passages into
small pieces. The translation itself is unreliable.”120 On zeitlin’s translation:
“Neither the translation nor the explanation fulilled the hopes that Zeitlin
raised. The original text was not corrected in the least and in many places the
translation is inaccurate. Nor does the style match that of the zohar. In his explanatory notes many matters are introduced that have nothing to do with the
literal meaning of the zohar.”121 Tishby also criticized the English translation
by Sperling, Simon and Levertoff, saying, “The translators did their work in
good faith, but their lack of knowledge of kabbalistic doctrines led them into
error from time to time.” He invalidated de Pauly’s translation into French as
“full of dreadful mistakes and Christianizing falsiications”, and he noted that
Ernst Müller’s translation “was effected with great care, but there are frequent
mistakes in comprehension.”122
118
Ibid. According to zeev Gries, it was Gershom Scholem who urged Bialik press to cancel
their contract with Horodetzky, and persuaded Tishby to connect with Lachover to complete
the project. Consequentially, Horodetzky sued the Bialik Institute, and they published his
preface in a separate edition. See zeev Gries, “Isaiah Tishby’s Contribution to the study of
the zohar” (Hebrew), Davar 25.11.1994, 21; Jonatan Meir, “Hillel zeitlin’s zohar,” 154–55.
119
Meir, “Hillel zeitlin’s zohar,” 155.
120
Tishby, The Wisdom of the Zohar, vol. 1, 125, note 611.
121
Ibid., note 610.
122
Ibid., 102–103.
116
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
Contemporary Academic Translations of the Zohar
Tishby’s Mishnat ha-Zohar, was published in English in 1989 and earlier in
French in 1977. In the last decades of the twentieth century and the beginning of the twenty-irst, additional anthologies of Zoharic articles in English,
translated by scholars afiliated with academic institutions, were published123:
Daniel Matt’s anthology, The Book of Enlightenment (1983),124 which preceded his
comprehensive translation project (to be discussed in the following); a (partial)
translation of the Secrets of the Letters by Stephen Wald (1988)125; a translation
of the Midrash ha-Neelam Ruth, by Lawrence Englander and Herbert Basser
(1993)126; a translation of eight zoharic stories by Aryeh Wineman (1997)127;
a translation of Zohar Lamentations by Seth Brody (1999)128; and translation of
the Sifra detzeniuta by Pinchas Giller (2001) and Ronit Meroz (2016).129
Alongside these anthologies and translations of speciic Zoharic segments
in English, in the late twentieth century two comprehensive projects of zohar
translations appeared – one in French the other in English – by academic
scholars who based their translations on critical philological research. Charles
Mopsik began a project of translating the zohar into French in 1981 that went
123
Besides the “academic” translations of the zohar into English, in the second half of the
twentieth century additional translations into English were published, including a second edition
of Mather’s translation edited by Dagbort D. Runes (Dagbort D. Runes, The Wisdom of the
Kabbalah (New York: Philosophical Library, 1957). An interesting translation is that of the Sifra
Detzniuta and the Idrot (done according to the original say the authors) by two engineers, who
claimed that the anthropomorphic imagery of the texts is a description of a machine to produce
manna. See George Sassoon and Rodney Dale, The Kabbalah Decoded (London: Duckworth,
1978). Another translation of the Sifra Detzniuta and the Idrot (including the text called Idra de-bei
Mishkana), is Roy. A. Rosenberg, The Anatomy of God (New York: Ktav Publishing House, 1973).
124
Daniel C. Matt, The Book of Enlightenment (Mahwa: Paulist Press, 1983); The translations were
reprinted in Daniel .C Matt, Zohar: Annotated and Explained (Woodstock, Paths publishing, 2002).
125
Stephen G. Wald, The Doctrine of the Divine Name, an Introduction to Classical Kabbalistic Theology
(Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1988).
126
Lawrence A. Englander and Herbet W. Basser, The Mystical Study of Ruth (Atlanta: Scholars
Press, 1993).
127
Aryeh Weinman, Mystic Tales from the Zohar (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1998).
128
Seth Brody, Commentary on the Song of Songs and other kabbalistic commentaries (Kalamazoo:
Medieval Institute Publication, 1999), 153–206.
129
Pinchas Giller, Reading the Zohar (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2001), 158–69. (Giller
also translated the portion known as Idra debi Mashkana: Ibid., 169–71); Ronit Meroz, “The
Archeology of the zohar: Sifra Ditseniuta as a Sample Text,” DAAT 82 (2016): xxv–xxxix.
(The translation is of a shorter version of the text, found in Ms. Vatican 213.)
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
117
uninished due to his untimely death in 2003.130 Since 2003 Daniel Matt has
been publishing a comprehensive translation into English, The Zohar: Pritzker
Edition.131 Recently, Nathan Wolsky and Joel Hecker translated Midrash haNeelam portions of the zohar in the framework of the Pritzker Edition.132 The
detailed introductions to these translations, based on the research of Scholem
and his pupils, summarize the academic research approach to the zohar. Yet,
these comprehensive zohar projects present a different position than that
of Scholem regarding the spreading of the zohar and its place in modern
culture. Both Matt and Mopsik prepared full translations of the zohar, rather
than anthologies of translated zoharic articles. Despite the two scholars’ use
of academic methods and presentation of modern hermeneutic perspectives
of the text, they do not view the zohar as a historically valuable document
suited mainly (or only) to research, but as a cultural resource bearing spiritual
meaning for the modern reader. Scholem’s ambivalent stance, discussed earlier,
expressed both “admiration” and “disgust” for the zohar. The translations of
Mopsik and Matt were written out of veneration and esteem, mainly expressing
“admiration” of the zohar. This position, reminiscent of the approach in neoromantic translations of the zohar of the early twentieth century, is clearly
expressed in Daniel Matt’s introduction to the Pritzker Edition of the zohar:
The zohar’s teachings are profound and intense...follow the words to what lies
beyond and within; open the gates of imagination.... Above all, don’t reduce everything you encounter in these pages to something you already know. Beware of
trying to ind “the essence” of a particular teaching...here essence is inadequate
unless it stimulates you to explore ever deeper layers, to question your assumptions
about tradition, God and self.133
The words of introduction by Margot Pritzker (of the Jewish American multimillionaire family), who initiated and sponsored Daniel Matt’s translation
project, perfectly illustrate its background, addressing a reader who seeks to
rely on the authority of modern academic research, but who searches for
spiritual meaning relevant to his or her life in the zohar:
130
Charles Mopsik, Le Zohar, vols. 1–4 (Lagrasse: Verdier, 1981–2000).
Daniel C. Matt, The Zohar, Pritzker Edition, vols. 1–9 (Stanford University Press, 2003–2016).
132
Nathan Wolsky, The Zohar, Pritzker Edition, vol. 10 (Stanford University Press, 2016); Joel
Hecker, The Zohar, Pritzker Edition, vol. 11 (Stanford University Press, 2016).
133
Matt, Zohar Pritzker Edition, vol. 1, xxv–xxiv.
131
118
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
I wanted to be able to study the zohar from an English translation that would
draw upon the research and scholarship of the past half-century. I determined
to sponsor such a translation… My family and I now present the zohar to the
English reading public, with the hope that the radiance that lows from this great
work and from the Jewish mystical tradition will bring light to those who seek it.134
As we will see in the following, during the period in which Matt began his
project of translating the zohar into English, Michael Berg and members of
the Kabbalah Center were also working on an English translation. Although
I do not believe that these were prepared in direct response to one another,
their appearance in the same period relects competition between different
circles (academic scholars versus neo-Kabbalah practitioners) for control over
the zohar’s cultural capital and its presentation to the English-speaking public.
The New Age of Zohar Translations
There has been extensive activity in translations of the zohar in the late twentieth
and early twenty-irst centuries. Translations based on previous translations
(including those by Jean de Pauly, Gershom Scolem, Azriel Nathan Frenk,
Ernst Müller and Rabbi Yehuda Ashlag) have appeared in various languages
including German, Dutch, Italian, Spanish, Portuguese, Rumanian, Hungarian,
Polish, Russian and Japanese.135 Several translations into Hebrew have been
completed in recent decades by Jewish ultra-orthodox Kabbalists. Rabbi David
134
Matt, Zohar Pritzker Edition, vol. 1, xiv.
Translations into Rumanian (Carola Francisc, Zoharul, cartea splendori, traducere din ebraica de
Jean de Pauly, traducere în limba româna de Carola Francisc (Bucuresti: Antet, 1997), and Spanish
(Lenó Dujovne, El Zohar, vols. 1–5, (Buenos Aires: Editorial Sigal, 1977–1978)) are based on
that of de Pauly. For a translation into Dutch based on Müller’s translation see Ernst Müller,
Zohar, Het Heilige boek van de Kabbalah, vertaling G. J. van Lamoen (Deventer: Ankh-Hermes,
1982). For a Polish translation based on Franck’s translation, see Asriel Nathan Frenk, Opowiesci
Zoharu, przelozyl z hebrajskiego, wstepem i komentarzem opatrzyl I. Kania (Krakow: Wydawn.
Literackie, 1988). For a partial Russian translation based on Ashlag’s Hebrew translation see:
Efrem Bauch, Zohar Parashat Pinchas, Jerusalem 1995 (Еф. Бауха, Зоар, парашат Пинхас,
Иерусалим 1995). The anthology of zoharic articles in Hungarian is based, according to
the title page, on translations by Müller and Mopsik, as well as the Ashlag translation and
the Soncino translation of the zohar into English. See Daniel Bíró and Peter Réti, Zóhár: a
ragyogás könyve (Budapest: Holnap Kiado, 1990). Müller’s Der Zohar was translated to Japanese
in Ishimaru, Shoji, Zoharu Kabara no seiten (Hosei University Press, 2012). Previously, Mathers’
Kabbalah Unveiled was translated in Handa, Itaru, Beru wo nuida kabara (Kokusho Kanko kai,
2000) (I am grateful to Shin’ichi Yoshinaga for this information). For translations into various
languages based on Scholem’s English translation, see footnote 109.
135
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
119
Shalom Batzri, head of the Kabbalistic Yeshiva “Hashalom”, and one of the
prominent Kabbalists in Israel in recent years (known for his performance of a
Dybbuk exorcism in 1999), collected, translated and edited the collection Legends
of the Zohar, printed between 1981–1993. This collection was also translated
into English, Spanish and French.136 Alongside Batzri’s anthology (which
includes articles perceived as Peshat Zohar) several comprehensive translations
of the zohar into Hebrew have recently come out. A translation of the zohar
is included in Rabbi Daniel Frisch’s anthology of zohar commentaries, Matok
Midvash, published between 1986–1990.137 In the introduction to the book,
Frisch printed “An essay on the magnitude of importance of studying the
book of zohar and all the other secrets of the Torah in our time.”138 In it, the
traditional perceptions regarding the eschatological signiicance of studying
the zohar are repeated, as well as the notion that the zohar contains words
of morality and religious awe (Yirat Shamayim) which can also be learned by
those who are not proicient in the Kabbalah.139 A Hebrew translation of the
zohar was also included in the zohar commentary of Yechiel Bar Lev, Zohar
with Yedid Nefesh Commentary, published in 14 volumes between 1992–1999.140
Another translation into Hebrew, without a commentary, was published in
ten volumes in 1998 by Yerid Hasefarim publishing house.141 This translation
was prepared by a team of scholars headed by Rabbi Shlomo Cohen, and
includes an extensive introduction by Rabbi Yehuda Edri. In the introduction
Edri engages in lengthy discussions of the authorship of the zohar, the
history of the Kabbalah, the structure of the zohar, commentaries of the
zohar, and other subjects. He accepts the traditional position regarding the
antiquity of the Zohar, and repeats the eschatological claim as a justiication
for the translation project.142 Shlomo Cohen stresses that he abstained from
translating the Idra Raba, the Idra Zuta and Sifra Ditzniuta, following the decree
against the translation of these sections. It is possible that this emphasis serves
136
David Shalom Batzri, Tales of the Zohar, 7 vols. (Jerusalem: Haktav Institute, 1981–1993)
(Hebrew); Idem, Tales from the Zohar, translated into English by Edward Levin (Jerusalem:
Haktav Institute, 1992); Idem, Historias Del Zohar, traducción, D. Litvak, (Jerusalem: Haktav
Institute, 1992); Idem, Histoires du Zohar, traduits én français par Y. Lederman, (Jerusalem:
Haktav Institute, 1993).
137
Daniel Frisch, Matok MiDvash, vols. 1–4 (Jerusalem: Machon Da`at Yoseph, 1986–1990).
138
Frisch, Matok MiDvash, vol. 1, 14–19.
139
Ibid., 4.
140
Yechiel Bar Lev, Zohar with Yedid Nefesh Commentary, vols. 1–14 (Petah Tikvah: n.p., 1992–1997)
141
Sefer Hazohar, 10 vols. (Jerusalem: Yerid Hasefarim, 1998).
142
Ibid., vol. 1, 20.
120
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
to distinguish the Yerid Hasefarim translation from that of Rabbi Ashlag, who
included these sections in his translation.
In addition to translations of the zohar into Hebrew, an anthology of
zoharic articles translated into English with commentary was prepared by
Rabbi Moshe Miller, a member of the Habad Hasidic movement.143 Moshe
Miller published a comprehensive essay claiming the antiquity of the zohar, in
which he vehemently disagrees with the conclusions of the academic school of
Scholem, Tishby and their ilk, but nevertheless relies on on academic studies
from recent years (irst and foremost those of Moshe Idel).144
A more comprehensive translation of the zohar into English was prepared
by the largest neo-Kabbalistic movement, the Kabbalah Center. The translation, completed by Michael Berg, was published in twenty-three volumes
between 1999–2003.145 This edition is based on Rabbi Yehuda Ashlag’s Hebrew
translation and commentary, Hasulam. The edition begins with lengthy introductions by Philip Berg, the founder of the Kabbalah Center, and his son
Michael, which present the neo-Kabbalistic ideas of their movement. The
Bergs accept traditional Kabbalistic perceptions regarding the authenticity of
the zohar, its authority and its holiness, but they integrate these perceptions
with typical New Age ideas. Accordingly, Michael Berg explains the purpose
of his translation project based on the traditional perception that studying and
spreading the zohar will bring redemption closer, but as far as he is concerned
redemption equals transformation to a higher level of global consciousness:
The following translation of the zohar strives to open a door to the great cosmic
mysteries for those who are genuinely interested in understanding the structure and
laws of the universe. It is thus utterly vital for the spiritual and physical survival
of humanity; and its teachings are designed to lead humanity to the days of the
Mashiach, the long-prophesized return of the golden age, when peace, compassion,
wisdom and love will prevail among people, when harmony will rule in the depths
below as it does in the heights above. Such are the true goals of all metaphysical
systems… Transformation of consciousness is the point, for from that comes the
elevation of global consciousness, given our current condition, we cannot afford
to ignore the gift of these Holy words any longer. It is time to change the world.146
143
Moshe Miller, Zohar Selections Translated and Annotated (Morristown: Fiftieth Gate Publication,
2000).
144
Moshe Miller, The Authenticity of the Zohar. http://www.chabad.org/kabbalah/article_cdo/
aid/380763/jewish/Other-Claims-and-Responses-Continued.htm (accessed 15.11.2016).
145
Michael Berg, The Zohar by Shimon Bar Yochai with the Sulam commentary, 23 vols. (New York:
Kabbalah Center International, 1999–2003).
146
Ibid., vol. 1, lxxvii.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
121
In his introduction, Philip Berg ties the spreading of the zohar to the arrival
of the New Age of Aquarius:
The critical moment of change would arrive in conjunction with the Aquarian
Age… The Aquarian inluence will be a subtle force that will permit the gradual
spread of the Holy Grail until it becomes an integral force of humankind.147
Differing from traditional Kabbalists and modern Jewish translators of the
zohar, who underline the “Jewish” nature of the zohar as a religious or national text, Philip Berg emphasizes the universalist nature of the zohar (an
emphasis reminiscent of the Christian Kabbalistic and occultist approach):
“The entire world will come to understand that the holy zohar, which ushered
in the second revelation, was intended for all humankind.”148 This emphasis is
expressed by adopting a Christian term, “the Holy Grail”, as another name for
the zohar. In a segment integrating New Age astrological perceptions, Berg
asserts that the publication of the “Holy Grail” in its entirety will allow the attraction of positive astral inluence in the world (by means of reading-scanning
the zohar) and will lead to the elimination of chaos from our lives:
To address these inluences, which can at times be positive or negative, the Holy
Grail was assigned the task of tapping these positive inluences and eliminate (sic)
the negative inluences. Each year brings with it a host of different inluences.
Nevertheless, the scanning-reading charts that will become available after the
publishing of the entire Holy Grail, will assign the appropriate section of the
Holy Grail to each and every week in any given year. Thus, the practitioner will
have at his/her ingertips the relevant and timely connecting-section towards the
elimination of chaos from our lives.149
Like many others who translated the zohar, Michael Berg criticizes and
invalidates the previous translations of the zohar into English. He speaks
out against abridged editions (probably referring to the Soncino Edition) and
against the anthologies that came out in English:
Those who think they are familiar with the text, from often highly abridged editions or ones that assemble aphorisms into subject categories, will invariably ind
this edition utterly different from what they have been accustomed to thinking of
as the zohar. The other works are best viewed as being like the trailers one sees
147
148
149
Ibid., xxviii.
Ibid., xxv.
Ibid., xx–xxi.
122
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
long before the actual movie arrives: and like many trailers they have created an entirely misleading impression of what they were supposed to represent faithfully.150
Berg claims that he intentionally refrains from writing an academic interpretation of the zohar. His objection is directed against academic translators such
as Daniel Matt, who began his translation project in the same period. Berg’s
words highlight the competition over the growing cultural capital of the zohar
between neo-Kabbalists and academic scholars of Kabbalah:
Those involved with producing this edition were faced with the question of
whether to present it in a formal academic manner – with footnotes, scholarly
digressing on linguistic matters, and so on – or to offer it to the world in a form as
simple and unadorned as possible, so that its purpose would remain solely what it
always has been: to bring light where formerly there was none. We chose the latter
course, since providing material for yet more obscure treaties on metaphysical theology serves no real purpose, but it does betray the real purpose of the zohar.151
Conclusion
The various translations of the zohar reviewed in this article were created in
different historical, social and political contexts and were written from diverse
theological and ideological standpoints and hermeneutical perspectives. For all
the translations of the zohar that have been and continue to be created over
the generations, there is one common denominator – the desire to spread it
among audiences who are unable to read it in its original format. The various
translations, however, differ from one another in the reader-audience they
address, in the choice of zoharic material translated, in the reasons used to
justify the translation and in the ideological, political and economic factors that
stimulated and enabled the various translation projects.
In several cases, common ideological factors stand behind translations done
in different languages. Thus, Sabbatean ideology motivated eighteenth-century
zohar translations into Yiddish and Ladino, with Sabbatean circles also possibly involved in Latin translations of the period. During the Renaissance and
the Baroque period, and in the modern era as well, Christian Kabbalists, converted Jews and missionaries translated zoharic articles into Latin, German,
French and Yiddish. Theosophical and occultist circles translated the zohar
150
151
Ibid., lxxiii.
Ibid., lxxi.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
123
into English and French at the end of the nineteenth and the beginning of
the twentieth century. Jewish scholars afiliated with these circles translated zoharic articles into Arabic and German. At the outset of the twentieth
century, Jewish scholars afiliated with neo-romantic and Zionist circles translated the zohar into German, Hebrew, Yiddish and English. Various English,
French and Hebrew translations were written in the twentieth and twenty-irst
century from an academic perspective, based on a historical-philological research approach. Other translations in Hebrew and English were done during
this same period by contemporary Jewish Kabbalists, using traditional and
neo-Kabbalistic approaches.
The various theological and ideological perspectives from which the zohar
translations were created, as well as the diverse audiences they were intended
for, formed the nature and scope of the different translations. Some chose
to translate particular sections of the zohar. Others created anthologies of
translated zoharic articles, which were chosen by different criteria. Christian
Kabbalists like Sommer and Norellius chose to translate zoharic articles that,
according to their understanding, conveyed Christian conceptions. Traditional Jewish Kabbalistic circles generally chose to translate articles considered
Peshat Zohar, mainly anecdotes and moral stories. The more comprehensive
translations written by Jews in the twentieth century, for example the Soncino
translation in English and the Yerid Hasefarim in Hebrew, also refrained from
translating the most esoteric units of the zohar, such as the Idrot and Sifra
Detzniuta. In fact, it was exactly these esoteric parts that were translated by
Sabbateans into Ladino and by the Christian Kabbalist, Knorr von Rosenroth,
into Latin. Following von Rosenroth, these texts became central in occultist
circles at the turn of the nineteenth century. In contrast, the modern anthologies of zoharic articles that have been written from an academic perspective
are generally divided according to subjects that relect the categories according
to which academic research of Kabbalah is carried out.
There was often competition between the different ideological circles
behind the zohar translation projects over the cultural capital (and sometimes
the economic gains) that zohar translation provided. The more the fame of
the zohar and its value as a cultural commodity increased in communities that
were unable to read it in its original tongue, the more competition between
various groups around the control of translation and distribution of the zohar
increased as well. As Pierre Bourdieu observes, “In fact, analysis of the ields
of cultural production shows that, whether among theatre and ilm critics
or political journalists, whether in the intellectual ield or the religious ield,
124
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
producers produce not, or not so much as people think, by reference to their
audience, but by reference to their competitors.”152 To a great extent this is
true regarding the ield of Zohar translations, especially in the modern era. As
we have seen in this review, in the late nineteenth and early twentieth century
great interest in the Kabbalah arose among Western esoteric circles in Europe
and the United States. In this context various zohar translations were created
in European languages, most of which were based on Knorr von Rosenroth’s
Latin translation of the zohar. It may well be that the appearance of these
translations encouraged the writing of zohar translations in German and later
in English by Jewish translators that were mostly based on the Aramaic original.
These translations drew critique from Gershom Scholem and his disciples,
who claimed that they did not adhere to rigorous academic standards. The
academic scholars created translations in Hebrew, German and English that
deployed historical and philological tools. The competition over the cultural
capital of the zohar also encouraged the creation of zohar translations in
Jewish Kabbalistic circles. It seems that it is not a coincidence that Rabbi
Yehuda Ashlag’s translation project was created during the same period in
which Tishby’s comprehensive anthology was published.
In the late twentieth and beginning of the twenty-irst century interest in the
zohar and the Kabbalah is growing in many circles, resulting in intensive zohar
translation activity, mostly English, French and Hebrew. As we saw, three new
translations of the zohar in Hebrew have appeared in the past few decades (by
Daniel Frish, Yechiel Bar Lev and Shlomo Cohen), which were all created in
orthodox circles. In my opinion, the appearance of these translations should
be regarded as a response to the intensive spreading of the interpretation of
Hasulam by neo-Kabbalistic groups, mainly the Kabbalah Center (and recently
the Bnei Baruch group). The appearance of two new comprehensive translations of the zohar into English in the past few years, the Pritzker Edition by
Daniel Matt and Michael Berg’s translation for the Kabbalah Center (as well
as Moshe Mille`s partial translation) was stimulated by competition for the
growing English readership interested in Kabbalah. The increasing popularity
of the Kabbalah and the zohar amongst Jewish and non-Jewish audiences,
and the fact that very few circles today are able to read it in its original form,
promises the appearance of additional zohar translations in the future.
152
Pierre Bourdieu, Sociology in Question (London: Sage Publications, 1993), 165.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
125
Bibliography
Assaf, Simcha. “The Controversy over the Printing of Kabbalistic Literature” (Hebrew). Sinai
5 (1939): 1–9 (Hebrew).
Ashlag, Yehuda HaLévi. Hasulam. Jerusalem: Itur Rabanim, 1955 (Hebrew).
———. Matan Torah. Jerusalem: Kabbalah Research Center, 1982 (Hebrew).
Asulin, Shifra. “Another Look at Sabbateanism, Conversion, and Hebraism in SeventeenthCentury Europe: Scrutinizing the Character of Johan Kemper of Uppsala, or Moshe Son
of Aharon of Krakow.” (Hebrew), in The Sabbatean Movement and Its Aftermath: Messianism,
Sabbateanism and Frankism. Vol. 2, edited by Rachel Elior, 423–70. Jerusalem: The Hebrew
University, 2001.
Azulai, Abraham. Hesed le Avraham. Amsterdam: Imanuel Ataias, 1685 (Hebrew).
Bar Lev, Yechiel. Zohar with Yedid Nefesh Commentary. Vols. 1–14. Petah Tikvah: n.p., 1992–1997.
Bauch, Efrem. Zohar, parashat Pinchas. Jerusalem: 1995 (Еф. Бауха, Зоар, парашат Пинхас,
Иерусалим 1995).
Batzri, David Shalom. Tales of the Zohar. 7 vols. Jerusalem: Haktav Institute, 1981–1993
(Hebrew).
———. Tales from the Zohar. Translated into English by Edward Levin. Jerusalem: Haktav
Institute, 1992.
———. Historias Del Zohar. Traducción D. Litvak. Jerusalem: Haktav Institute, 1992.
———. Histoires du Zohar. Traduits én français par Y. Lederman. Jerusalem: Haktav Institute, 1993.
Berg, Michael. The Zohar by Shimon Bar Yochai with the Sulam commentary. 23 vols. New York:
Kabbalah Center International, 1999–2003.
Biesebthal, Johann Heinrich. Auszüge aus dem Buche Sohar mit deutscher Übersetzung. Berlin: P.G
Löw, 1854.
Bíró, Daniel and Réti, Peter. Zóhár: a ragyogás könyve. Budapest: Holnap Kiado, 1990.
Bourdieu, Pierre. Sociology in Question. London: Sage Publications, 1993.
Bourel, Dominique . “Notes sur la première traduction française du zohar.” In Jüdisches Denken
in einer Welt ohne Gott, Festschrift für Stéphane Mosès, edited by J. Mattern, G. Motzkin and S.
Sandbank, 120–29. Berlin: Vorwerk 8, 2000.
Brody, Seth. Commentary on the Song of Songs and other kabbalistic commentaries. Kalamazoo:
Medieval Institute Publication, 1999.
Chateau, Henri. Le Zohar. Paris: Chamuel, 1895.
Chotsh, Tzvi Hirsh. Nahalat Tzvi. Frankfurt-am-Main, 1711 (Hebrew).
Coudert, Allison P. The Impact of the Kabbalah in the Seventeenth Century. Leiden: Brill, 1999.
de Pauly, Jean. Le Livre de la splendeur: Doctrine ésotérique des Israélites. Paris: LaFume, 1906.
de Manhar, Nurho. Zohar: Bereshith, Genesis, and expository translation from Hebrew. San Diego:
Wizards Bookshelf, 1978.
Deinard, Ephraim. Alatah. St Louis, 1927.
Dujovne, Lenó. El Zohar, vols. 1–5. Buenos Aires: Editorial Sigal, 1977–1978.
Englander, Lawrence A. and Herbet W. Basser. The Mystical Study of Ruth. Atlanta: Scholars
Press, 1993,
Enelow, Hyman. Sefer menorat hama’or by Israel ibn Joseph Al-Nakawa. New York: Bloch, 1929–
1931 (Hebrew).
Farber-Ginat, Asi. Joseph Gikatila’s Commentary on Ezekiel’s Chariot. Los Angeles: Cherub Press,
1998 (Hebrew).
126
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
Fenton, Paul “La Cabbale et l’academie.” Pardes, 19–20 (1994): 216–238.
Francisc, Carola. Zoharul, cartea splendori, traducere din ebraica de Jean de Pauly, traducere în limba
româna de Carola Francisc. Bucuresti: Antet, 1997.
Franck, Adolphe. La kabbale ou, La philosophie religieuse des Hébreux. Paris, 1843.
Frenk, Azriel Nathan. Sefer agadot hazohar. Warsaw: Achiasaf, 1923–24 (Hebrew).
———. Opowiesci Zoharu. Przelozyl z hebrajskiego, wstepem i komentarzem opatrzyl I. Kania
(Krakow: Wydawn. Literackie, 1988)
Frisch, Daniel. Matok MiDvash. Vols. 1–4. Jerusalem: Machon Da`at Yoseph, 1986–1990
(Hebrew).
Giller, Pinchas. Reading the Zohar. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2001.
Ginsburg, Christian D. The Kabbalah: Its Doctrines, Development, and Literature. London: Longmans,
Green, Reader and Dyer, 1955.
Grayevsky, Pinchas. “On the Translation of the Idrot to Arabic” (Hebrew). Meginzei Yerushalaim
2 (1930): 15–16 (Hebrew).
Greenup, Albert William. “A Kabbalistic Epistle by Isaac b. Samuel b. Hayyim Sephardi.” Jewish
Quarterly Review 21 (1931): 370–74.
Gross, Abraham. Iberian Jewry from Twilight to Dawn: The World of Rabbi Abraham Saba. Leiden:
Brill, 1995.
Hanegraaff, Wouter. Esotericism and the Academy: Rejected Knowledge in Western Culture. Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 2012.
Hecker, Joel. The Zohar, Pritzker Edition. Vol. 11. Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2016.
Hedaya, Obadya. The Complete Book of the Zohar on the Torah. Petach Tikva: Yalkut, 1946
(Hebrew).
Huss, Boaz. “The Text and Context of the zohar Sulzbach Edition.” In Tradition, Heterodoxy
and Religious Culture: Judaism and Christianity in the Early Modern Period, edited by Chanita
Goodblatt and Howard Kreisel, 117–38. Be’er Sheva: Ben-Gurion University Press, 2006.
———. “The Suis From America: Kabbalah and Theosophy in Puna in the Late Nineteenth
Century.” In Kabbalah and Modernity: Interpretations, Transformations, Adaptations, edited by
Boaz Huss, Marco Pasi, Kocku von Stuckrad, 167–93. Leiden: Brill, 2010.
———. “Forward to the East: Naphatali Herz Imber’s Perception of Kabbalah.” Journal of
Modern Jewish Studies 12, no. 3 (2013): 398–418.
Ma’arechet Ha’Elohut. Mantua, 1558 (Hebrew).
Idel, Moshe. “The Translation of R. David ben Judah Hehasid of the zohar and His
Interpretation of the Alfa Beita.” Alei sefer 8 (1980): 60–73; (1981): 84–98 (Hebrew).
Imber, Naphtali Herz. “What is the Cabbala?” Uriel 1, no. 1 (1895): 19.
———. Treasures of Two Worlds: Unpublished Legends and Traditions of the Jewish Nation. Los
Angeles: Citizens printing shop, 1910.
Itaru, Handa. Beru wo nuida kabara. Kokusho Kanko kai, 2000.
Jounet, Albert. La Clef du Zohar. Paris: Bibliothèque Chacornac, 1909.
Kar, Don. “Notes on The zohar in English.” 1985, 1995, updated 2001–2010, http://www.
digital-brilliance.com/kab/karr/zie.pdf (accessed 15.11.2016).
Kuntz, Marion L. Guillaume Postel, Prophet of the Restitution of all Things: His Life and Thought.
The Hague: Nijhof, 1981.
Lappin, Eleonore. Der Jude 1916–1928. Tubingen: Mohr Siebeck, 2000.
Lévi, Eliphas. Le Livre des Splendeurs. Paris: Chamuel, 1894.
Liebes, Yehuda. Studies in the Zohar. Albany: SUNY, 1993.
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
127
Mathers, Samuel Liddel MacGregor. The Kabbalah Unveiled. London: G. Redway, 1887.
Matt, Daniel C. The Book of Mirrors. Chico: Scholars Press, 1986.
———. The Book of Enlightenment. Mahwah: Paulist Press, 1983.
———. Zohar: Annotated and Explained. Woodstock: Paths Publishing, 2002.
———. The Zohar, Pritzker Edition. Vols. 1–9 (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2003–16)
McGinn, Bernard. “Cabbalists and Christians: Reflections on Cabala in Medieval and
Renaissance Thought.” In Jewish Christians and Christian Jews, edited by R.H. Popkin and
G.M Weinder, 11–34. Dordrecht: Springer, 1994.
Meir, Jonatan. “Hillel zeitlin’s zohar: the History of a Translation and Commentary Project”
(Hebrew). In Kabbalah: Journal for the Study of Jewish Mystical Texts 10 (2004): 119–57.
Merhavyah, Khen-Melekh. “Two Quotes from Midrash hane’elam in a Latin Manuscript”
(Hebrew). Kiryat sefer 23 (1968): 566–567.
Meroz, Ronit. “The Archeology of the zohar: Sifra Ditseniuta as a Sample Text.” DAAT 82
(2016): xxv–xxxix.
Meroz, Ronit and Weiss, Judith. “The Source of Guillaume Postel’s 1553 zohar Latin
Translation.” Renaissance Studies 28, no. 4 (2014): 1–14.
Miller, Moshe. Zohar Selections Translated and Annotated. Morristown: Fiftieth Gate Publication,
2000.
Mopsik, Charles. Le Zohar. Vols. 1–4. Lagrasse: Verdier, 1981–2000.
Müller, Ernst. Der Sohar und Seine Lehre: Einleitung in die Gedankenwelt der Kabbalah. Wein &
Berlin: R. Löwit, 1920.
———. Der Sohar: Das Heilige Buch Der Kabbalah, Nach dem Urtext. Wien: Heinrich Glanz, 1932.
———. Zohar, Het Heilige boek van de Kabbalah. Vertaling G. J. van Lamoen. Deventer:
Ankh-Hermes, 1982.
Myer, Isaac. Qabbalah: The Philosophical Writings of Solomon Ben Yehuda Ibn Gabirol. Philadelphia:
The author, 1888.
Norrelius, Andreas. Phosphoros Orthodoxae Fidei Veterum Cabbalistarum. Amsterdam, 1720.
Oetinger, Friedrich Christoph. Offentliches Denkmal der Lehrtafel Prinzessin Antonia. Tübingen, 1763.
Rawidowicz, Simon. My Conversations with Bialek. Jerusalem: Dvir, 1983.
Rosenberg, Yehuda Yudel. Sha’arei Zohar Torah. Warsaw: Edelstein, 1906 (Hebrew).
———. Zohar Torah al Hamishah Humshei Torah. Vols. 1–5. Montreal, 1924–25. Reprint New
York: Rosalg, 1955 (Hebrew).
Rosenberg, Roy. A. The Anatomy of God. New York: Ktav Publishing House, 1973.
Runes, Dagbort D. The Wisdom of the Kabbalah. New York: Philosophical Library, 1957.
Sassoon, George and Dale, Rodney. The Kabbalah Decoded. London: Duckworth, 1978.
Schmidt-Biggemann, Wilhelm. Geschichte der Christlichen Kabbala. Stuttgart: FrommannHolzboog, 2012.
Schoeps. H. J. “Rabbi Johan Kemper in Uppsala.” Kyrkohistorisk Årsskrift 46 (1945): 146–75.
Scholem, Gerhard. Bibliographia Kabbalistica. Leipzig: W. Drugulin, 1927.
———. “Did Moses de León Write the zohar?” (Hebrew). Mada’ei hayahadut, 1 (1926): 16–29.
———. Major Trends in Jewish Mysticism. New York: Schoken, 1971 [1941].
———. The Book of Splendour: Basic Readings from the Kabbalah. New York: Schocken, 1976
[1949].
———. Kabbalah. Jerusalem: Keter, 1974.
———. Zoar: o livro do splendor. Translated by Ana Maria Moreno Bueno. Rio de Janeiro:
Editora Renes, 1977.
128
Huss / Correspondences 4 (2016) 81–128
———. “Considérations sur l’histoire des débuts de la kabbala chrétienne.” In Kabbalistes
Chrétiens, edited by Gershom Scholem et al., 17–46. Paris: Albin Michel, 1979.
———. Le Zohar, le livre de la splendeur. Translated by E. Ochs. Paris: Seuil, 1980.
———. De Zohar, kabbalistische fragmenten. Amsterdam: J. P. Schoone, 1982.
———. El Zohar: el libro del esplendor. Translated by L. Colomé. México: Berbera, 1984.
———. Zohar: Il Libro dello splendore, edited by E. Loewenthal. Torino: Einaudi, 1998.
Secret, François. Le Zohar chez les Les Kabbalistes chrétiens de la Renaissance. Paris: Mouton, 1964.
Sefer Hazohar. 10 vols. Jerusalem: Yerid Hasefarim, 1998 (Hebrew).
Setzer, Shemuel Tsevi. Selected Writings. Tel Aviv: Mahbarot le-Sifrut, 1966.
Seidman, Jankew. Aus dem heiligen Buch Sohar des Rabbi Schimon ben Jochai. Berlin: Im Welt, 1932.
Shoji, Ishimaru. Zoharu Kabara no seiten. Tokyo: Hosei University Press, 2012.
Simon, Maurice, Harry Sperling and Paul Levertoff. The Zohar. London: Soncino, 1931–34.
Sommer, Gottfried Christoph. Specimen Theologiae Soharicae. Gothae, 1734.
Tholuck, August. Wichtige Stellen des Rabbinischen Buches Sohar. Berlin: 1824.
Tishby, Isaiah. La Kabbale: Anthologie du Zohar. Translated by I. Rouch. Paris: Berg International, 1977.
———. The Wisdom of the Zohar. Translated by David Goldstein. Oxford: The Littman Library, 1989.
Vom Judentum: Ein Sammelbuch. Leipzig: K. Wolff, 1913.
von Rosenroth, Knorr. Kabbalah Denudata. Sulzbach: 1677.
Vulliaud, Paul. Traduction intégrale du Siphra Di-Tzeniutha, le livre du secret. Paris: E. Nourry, 1930.
Wald, Stephen G. The Doctrine of the Divine Name, an Introduction to Classical Kabbalistic Theology.
Atlanta: Scholars Press, 1988.
Weinman, Aryeh. Mystic Tales from the Zohar. Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1998.
Weiss, Judith. “Guillaume Postel’s Introduction to His First Latin Translation and Commentary
on the Book of zohar” (Hebrew). In And This Is for Yehuda: Studies Presented to Our Friend,
Professor Yehuda Liebes, edited by Maren R. Niehoff, Ronit Meroz, and Jonathan Garb,
254–80. Jerusalem: The Bialik Institute, 2012.)
Wolfson, Elliot. The Book of the Pomegranate: Moses De Leon’s Sefer Harimon (Atlanta: Scholars
Press, 1988.
———. “Messianism in the Christian Kabbalah of Johann Kemper.” In Millenarianism and
Messianism in the Early Modern World, edited by M. Goldish and R. H Popkin, 139–87.
Dordrecht: Kluwer, 2001.
Wolsky, Nathan. The Zohar, Pritzker Edition. Vol. 10. Stanford University Press, 2016.
zeitlin, Hillel. “The Key to the Book zohar” (Hebrew). Ha-Tkufah 6 (1920): 314–32.
———. “A letter to Simon Rawidowicz.” HaMetzuda, vols. 3–4 (1945): 340–41.
Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
ISSN: 2053-7158 (Online)
correspondencesjournal.com
Book Reviews
Kennet Granholm. Dark Enlightenment: The Historical, Sociological and Discursive
Contexts of Contemporary Esoteric Magic. Leiden: Brill, 2014. xi+226 pp. ISBN:
978-90-04-27486-0. $133.00
Dark Enlightenment should be seen as an important touchstone in the next
generation of works coming from the primarily European and speciically
Continental schools of Western esotericism research. Until recently, the ield
of Western esotericism has struggled with the problems and boundaries of
ethnography, and how to navigate the sometimes murky spaces of practice
and scholarship. While Wouter Hanegraaff has argued that scholars in this
ield need to be more open to and embrace ethnographic approaches,1 the
reality is that the historical emphasis on text, and the history of intellectual
currents within the ield has, in practice, caused a somewhat strained relationship with practitioners.2 In Dark Enlightenment, Granholm addresses this
situation through not only his own ethnographic practice, but also by presenting challenges and areas of expansion to the emerging ield of Western
esoteric studies.
The title of the book does cover more ground than the content. The book
is centered on a single magical order, the Stockholm based Dragon Rouge of
which Granholm is a member and initiate, and which also formed the basis of
Granholm’s doctoral research. Within the study of Western esotericism, this
type of practitioner ethnography is quite rare, although the treatment is more
1
Wouter J. Hanegraaff, “The Power of Ideas: Esotericism, Historicism, and the Limits of
Discourse,” Religion 43, no. 2 (2013): 252–73.
2
Amy Hale, “Navigating Praxis: Pagan Studies vs. Esoteric Studies,” The Pomegranate 15, no.
1–2 (2013) 151–63.
© 2016 Amy Hale
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
130
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
common in allied ields such as Pagan Studies. Pagan Studies ethnographies,
however, frequently focus tightly on the methods of relexive ethnography,
so much so that the reader may get the sense that this is primarily a tactic to
legitimize the study, in addition to being sound ethnographic practice. While
certainly relexive, Granholm’s work seems to make no apology for either the
legitimacy of his subject matter or his approach, which is quite refreshing.
Dark Enlightenment starts by presenting a summary of approaches to Western
esotericism. In this section Granholm centers in on discourse analysis, an approach also favored by Kocku von Stuckrad,3 which takes as its central method
the ways in which knowledge, history, identities and relationships are constructed and inluenced by social relations and conditions of power. While this
approach is not novel, its explicit adoption in the study of Western esotericism
is a useful counterpoint to historically based studies which are promoting truth
claims, thus characterizing what has been termed by Hanegraaff and others a
“religionist” approach to esotericism.4
The second section of Dark Enlightenment is a quick historical overview of
what Granholm terms “Post Enlightenment,” mostly nineteenth and twentieth
century esoteric groups and ideas which provided the primary inspiration and
context for Dragon Rouge. It includes short sections on Theosophy, the “Occult
Revival” of nineteenth century Britain and France, the Ordo Templi Orientis
and the impact of Aleister Crowley, the rise of Neopaganism, contemporary
Satanism, and the New Age movement of the 1960s. The purpose of this wide
ranging section is to establish certain historical, symbolic and ritual threads, and
to identify the centrality of the discourses which impacted Dragon Rouge, not
to provide a comprehensive account of any of these groups or movements.
While the knowledgeable reader might like to see a bit more usage of primary
source material in this section, it is also evident that this overview needed to
be kept concise.
In the third, fourth and ifth sections of the book, Granholm presents his
ethnographic work with Dragon Rouge, and explores the ways in which certain
practices and motivations of the order are shaped by broader discourses within
contemporary and historical Western esotericism. Granholm’s depiction of
Dragon Rouge is of a very different type of order than highly structured
Kocku von Stuckrad, “Discursive Transfers and Reconigurations: Tracing the Religious
and the Esoteric in Secular Culture,” in Contemporary Esotericism, eds. Egil Asprem and Kennet
Granholm (Shefield, UK: Equinox Publishing, 2013), 226–43.
4
Wouter Hanegraaff, “Teaching Experiential Dimensions of Esotericism,” in Teaching
Mysticism, ed. William B. Parsons (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2011), 154–70.
3
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
131
groups like the Golden Dawn or the O.T.O., with a curriculum designed for
individuation rather than strict adherence to a “current” or ritual structure.
Granholm does a ine job of characterizing the ways in which Dragon Rouge
intersects with and departs from the inluences and practices of what we can
consider the contemporary Western ritual magic traditions that emerge from
Freemasonry, although I am not convinced that Dragon Rouge is as antinomian
as Granholm argues. However, this is how Dragon Rouge practitioners
characterize themselves, and as such there is useful and interesting discussion in
these sections of the book about the relationship of the discourses of tradition
and authenticity to eficacy and personal growth within this framework. In any
case, this part of the book really stands apart in its beautiful, rich description
of some of the moments in Granholm’s own journey with Dragon Rouge.
Dark Enlightenment, however, does suffer from a traditional problem that
plagues a number of ethnographic studies: a lack of emphasis on historicity
and historical currents, particularly in places that would have beneitted from
some theoretical development. Historical context is essential to providing
the necessary background for the discourses and social constructions under
consideration. For instance, the Dragon Rouge approach to and construction
of “nature” and the “natural world” need some expansion. This topic has
relevance not only for the study of contemporary and modern Paganisms,
but also for understanding anyone who is trying to impact their sense of
agency through the manipulation of the “natural” world, which may be the
driving impulse behind both high ritual and folk magic. A closer examination
of the position of the Dragon Rouge magician in relationship to historical
ideas about nature and the natural would have provided some useful context
for this central point of Dragon Rouge practice and worldview, and would
have supported the wider discourse analytical framework. Furthermore, the
general discussion of modern Western “Left Hand Path” traditions could have
beneitted from a short contextualizing section on the impact of Tantra in the
history of modern occultism.
A wider consideration of historical Tantra, in addition to an exploration,
however brief, of the history of the divine feminine and magical revolutionary
ideologies, might also have helped to lesh out the sections on gender and
feminism in this study. From Granholm’s reporting, the role of the divine
feminine is key to understanding the theoretical underpinnings of Dragon
Rouge’s “dark magic.” Yet, the construction of “the feminine” in this context
and its impact on both the women and men of the order seems underproblematized. Striking a balance between taking respondents’ understanding
132
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
of their experience at face value, while also unpacking the wider historical
and cultural context which shapes and informs those experiences, is the tricky
pivot point on which the ethnographer sits. I feel as though the respondents’
conclusions about gender and transgression here, especially when some of the
portrayals of gender in Dragon Rouge settings can be read as quite normative,
might have beneitted from some challenges from the ethnographer. To be
fair, Granholm notes this in an afterword as an area which could have been
expanded, and also comments on the overall need to address gender issues in
the ield of Western esotericism.
It is in the inal chapter regarding modernity that Dark Enlightenment shows
its real strength. Here, Granholm provides some ine critique of the central
tropes of disenchantment, modernity and secularization that have become
the cornerstones of much of the theoretical academic production in Western
esoteric studies, and instead suggests that the territory of these spaces is far
murkier than previous analysis suggests. Granholm argues that contemporary
Western esotericism is not characterized as much by secularization and a
response to disenchantment, but rather the relationship of the individual to
religious institutions and orthodoxy, and argues that the hallmark of modern
esotericism is eclecticism. It is worth noting, though, that while the Golden
Dawn and Theosophy may through our modern lenses look highly eclectic,
they themselves saw the drawing together of disparate symbols and traditions
as evidence of their perennialism and their connection with a genuine, universal
and enduring “Tradition.” What to us today looks like creative bricolage was to
practitioners of Theosophy and the Golden Dawn the discovery of a coherent
and revealed universal wisdom tradition, the construction of which was deeply
informed by discourses of colonialism. What Granholm accomplishes in this
section is a challenge to any attempts to reduce or deine the essential condition
of esotericism in the West as many scholars have attempted to do. He reminds
us that the contexts and meanings of esoteric texts and practices are ever
shifting, and perhaps it is ethnography that best uncomfortably exposes those
gray areas.
Dark Enlightenment brings a lot to the table. I want to applaud Granholm’s
openness and approach, but I think that it is also worth appreciating the openness of Thomas Karlsson (the group’s founder) and other Dragon Rouge
members in working with Granholm and letting him publish about the order
with such rich and compelling description. Granholm’s own beautifully candid
responses to his experiences were also a breath of fresh air from a ield that
frequently prides itself on keeping a safe distance from the subject, and there
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
133
is hope that this may pave the way for more in-depth studies. Much of the
reticence about dealing with occult practitioners stems from a combination
of fear, secrecy and even a level of scholarly ridicule of Western esoteric and
occult practices. It can also be dificult to gain access to contemporary practitioners as many of them have taken oaths of secrecy. Practitioner scholars are
rightfully concerned about the professional impact of their own experiences
and involvement, which in my view has led to a lack of relexivity and honesty
in many studies of modern occult groups and movements. Additionally, the
amount of correspondence and notes held by private collectors in personal
archives greatly restricts access to important texts which could provide deeper
insight into the nature and context of many modern esoteric practices. Hopefully Dark Enlightenment will help pave the way for better research conditions
and help to secure the legitimacy of these studies and bring Western esoteric
practices and practitioners ever so slightly more into the light.
Amy Hale
amyhale93@gmail.com
134
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
Abraham von Worms. The Book of Abramelin: A New Translation. Compiled and
edited by Georg Dehn. Translated by Steven Guth. Foreword by Lon Milo
DuQuette. Lake Worth: Ibis Press, 2015.
An important but overlooked igure in contemporary scholarship on Western
esotericism is Abraham von Worms, a 14th- to early 15th-century Jewish
Kabbalist whose writings in translated form were extraordinarily instrumental
to the formulation of the concept of the “Holy Guardian Angel” (HGA)
in modern occultism. The compelling narrative that Abraham von Worms
expounds in his writings, whether ultimately iction or not, provides an
unrivaled window into the magical “scene” of medieval Europe. It also takes
the reader on a quest that extends to modern Turkey, Israel, and Palestine.
It is in the Egyptian village of Araki, however, that Abraham von Worms
meets a hermit named Abramelin who expounds to him a practical system of
magical retirement for the purpose of invoking one’s “Angel” (Dein Engel in the
original German, lit. “thine Angel”). Once the Angel is invoked, the magician
is then instructed to evoke the four princes (Oberfürsten) of the “unredeemed
spirits” (böse Geister) who are subjected to his or her will. These princes and
their servitors are thus issued commands by means of a cognitively complex
process of visual mnemonics — the famous “magic squares” of Abramelin.1
The publishing quality of this edition rivals books published on the
academic market (despite a handful of spelling and punctuation errors), and
Steven Guth’s translations of the four books that together comprise the work
are clear and concise. Helpful visual referents are scattered throughout the text,
including historical illustrations of several of the characters that Abraham von
Worms assists in his narrative (e.g. Kaiser Sigismund and Frederick I, Elector
of Brandenburg). Period maps are also provided, as well as numerous scans of
actual manuscript folios and even some original images of the magic squares.
No less than four appendices written by the editor Georg Dehn have been
added: a memoir of his own journeys in search of Araki, his argument as to the
historical identity of Abraham von Worms as Jacob HaLevy (the MaHaRil),
his attempt to determine the actual geographical location of Araki, and his
1
For one possible method of disassembling this unique ritual technology with its associative correspondences, see Egil Asprem, “Reverse-Engineering ‘Esotericism’: How to Prepare a
Complex Cultural Concept for the Cognitive Science of Religion,” Religion 46.2 (2015): 173–75.
© 2016 Keith Cantú
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
135
comparative tabulation of variants in the lists of the names of the spirits.
These appendices have been substantially reorganized from the irst Ibis
Press edition so as to allow the material to integrate with Dehn’s forthcoming
book The Gnosis of Abramelin. Although Dehn convincingly argues that the
frame story contains historical elements, there is still no conclusive evidence
to prove whether or not Abraham von Worms actually existed, as it seems for
instance equally plausible that he could have been a narrative mouthpiece for a
magical community such as the 17th-century Rosicrucian authors of the Fama
Fraternitas, with knowledge both of 15th-century political leaders in Europe
and of Jewish Kabbalah.
This is what makes the philological history of the work equally as
compelling as its narrative and historical religious content, and on this point
Georg Dehn’s editing and Steven Guth’s translation are highly valuable to
scholars and practitioners alike. This edition is an English translation of
Dehn’s original German publication, which is itself composed from several
surviving manuscripts, none of which date later than the beginning of the 17th
century.2 In preparing the German publication Dehn utilized what he believed
were the earliest two extant manuscripts, composed in German and bearing
the date 1608 (Codex Guelibus 10.1 and 47.13, held by the Library of Duke
August in Wolfenbüttel). He also consulted two other German manuscripts
in the Dresden library, as well as a later manuscript composed in Hebrew
(MS.OPP.594 at Oxford’s Bodleian Library). This later manuscript had also
been examined by Gershom Scholem, who believed it to be a translation
from German, and Dehn had the manuscript re-translated into German by
Rabbi Salomon Siegl to help him prepare this edition. Dehn also consulted
the rare irst published version of this work, released under the pseudonym
Peter Hammer in Cologne in 1725 and known to the members of Fraternitas
Saturni, a German offshoot of the Ordo Templi Orientis.3 Although Dehn’s
edition does not contain an apparatus criticus, variants in the MS are cited
often and it is clear there was much attention to detail in preparing the edition
from multiple sources. By contrast, the occultist S.L. MacGregor Mathers
(1854–1918) of the Hermetic Order of the Golden Dawn used a late mid2
Georg Dehn, Büch Abramelin (Leipzig: Edition Araki, 2001).
Peter Hammer, Die egyptischen grossen Offenbarungen, in sich begreifend die aufgefundenen Geheimnissbücher Mosis; oder des Juden Abraham von Worms Buch der wahren Praktik in der uralten göttlichen
Magie und in Erstaunlichen Dingen, wie sie durch die heilige Kabbala und durch Elohym mitgetheilt worden
: Samt der Geister- und Wunder-Herrschaft, welches Moses in der Wüste aus dem feurigen Busch erlernet,
alle Verborgenheiten der Kabbala umfassend (Köln am Rhein, 1725).
3
136
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
19th century French manuscript held by the Bibliothèque d’Arsenal in Paris
to publish his inluential English translation of the text.4 This version of the
text has been in print ever since and is the most common English-language
edition, causing the technical terms “Operation” and “Holy Guardian Angel”
(whom Guth renders as “Guardian Angel” based off of the German Engel)
to be forever inscribed in the history-books of Western occultism. The variety
of sources posed several translation issues for Steven Guth as well, who felt
compelled to translate the German Herr to “Adonai” rather than French Seigneur
to “Lord” in Mathers’s edition. It is not said how the Hebrew translation of
the German original rendered the word for God.
Despite Mathers’s zeal in translating, his French exemplar only included
three out of the four books in the Codex Guelibus and all other manuscripts
(it omits a colorful book of “natural” spells and alchemical recipes that Dehn’s
revised edition translates in full). It also reduced the length of Abramelin’s
prescribed magical retirement from a year and a half to six months, and failed
to correctly replicate all of the magic squares. Despite these idiosyncrasies,
Mathers’s text was the standard edition for virtually an entire century until
Georg Dehn’s Büch Abramelin. This meant that prior to Dehn’s published
German edition and Guth’s English translations, earlier versions of the work
were really only accessible to those who either possessed the rare Peter Hammer
edition or who had access to early modern manuscript collections in several
different libraries across Europe. Dehn’s new edition therefore demonstrates
conclusively that Mathers’s English translation, while a true classic of Western
esotericism that would go on to greatly inform the magical career of Aleister
Crowley (1875–1947) and numerous other 20th century occult authors, was
ultimately based on an inferior textual exemplar.5
Despite this fact, Lon Milo DuQuette in his Foreword and Georg Dehn in
his Editor’s Note to the Second Revised Edition encourage readers not be too
hard on Mathers — or Crowley — given the limitations of their source materials. While this sympathy is a nice gesture towards modern practitioners, I felt
that a deeper examination of the way that Crowley implemented Abramelin’s
instructions would have strengthened their case. For example, the A...A... (the
magical order that Crowley co-founded with George Cecil Jones following the
schism of the Hermetic Order of the Golden Dawn) assigns instructions for
the attainment of the “Knowledge and Conversation of the Holy Guardian
4
The Book of the Sacred Magic of Abramelin the Mage (London: John M. Watkins, 1900).
Mathers’s French textual exemplar was later published with an introduction as La magie
sacrée d’Abramelin le mage, ed. Robert Ambelain (Paris: Niclaus, 1959).
5
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
137
Angel” to the Grade of Adeptus Minor.6 It is easy to miss the fact, however,
that the oficial A...A... instruction for this task (the “Vision of the Eighth
Æthyr,” also known as “Liber VIII”) was not pulled verbatim from Mathers’s
faulty edition of the Abramelin text but was penned during Crowley’s scrying
of the 8th (Enochian) Æthyr with Victor Neuberg while traveling across the
Sahara Desert in 1909. This newer instruction was published as part of “The
Vision & the Voice,” a supplement to The Equinox volume 1, no. 5, and prescribes a retirement period of ninety-one days instead of either the six months
of Mathers’s edition or the eighteen months of Dehn’s exemplar.7 It also contains other signiicant variations on Abramelin’s instructions that appear to be
speciic to the A...A... system of initiation.8 In any event, Crowley’s (and also
Mathers’s, but to a different degree) motivation was not always to “restore” an
original ritual text, but to adapt it in such a way that it would it the curriculum
for his students. Modern magicians stand in a long tradition of innovation
with regards to older ritual manuals — this was happening in the Middle Ages
also. The noted discrepancies in Abramelin’s instructions are therefore not as
problematic as would be the case if Crowley’s rendition was lifted directly from
the Mathers edition.
Given the recent impetus for examining traditional magical texts more
thoroughly through the lenses of cognitive science and Western esotericism,
Dehn’s edition in any case will certainly not disappoint. All in all, much credit
should be given to Dehn and Guth for a well-executed series of new editions
on the Abramelin text that can potentially open up the world of Abraham von
Worms to a wider audience of scholars and practitioners of esoteric traditions.
Keith Cantú
kecantu@umail.ucsb.edu
6
“Liber XIII,” in vol. 1, no. 3 of The Equinox (London: Simpkin Marshall, 1910).
For an edited version of this text, see The Vision & the Voice, with Commentary and Other
Papers (York Beach: Samuel Weiser, 1998).
8
See the works by author J. Daniel Gunther for the present way in which this initiatory
framework, including the invocation of the Holy Guardian Angel, is applied in practice.
7
138
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
Henrik Bogdan and Jan A.M. Snoek, eds. Handbook of Freemasonry. Leiden:
Brill, 2014. xx + 669 pp. ISBN: 978-90-04-21833-8.
The amount of publications dealing with Freemasonry is startling, usually
approaching the phenomenon either thematically, or in a purely encyclopedic
fashion. Handbook of Freemasonry proves to be something completely different
– a handbook for consultation – with contributions from no less then twentyseven scholars extensively and profoundly discussing and circling this more than
three hundred year old tradition of initiatory societies. Handbook of Freemasonry
consists of ive slightly overlapping thematic parts: history, religion, sociology,
politics, and culture. Each part is further sub-divided into thirty chapters,
excluding the introduction, thus creating a wide range of entrances to explore
and analyze the complexity of this initiatory society and its ambient contexts.
The irst section (Chapters 2–8) deals with historical perspectives and provides the foundation for the following parts. Jan A.M. Snoek and Henrik
Bogdan (chapter 2) set out the history of Freemasonry in a brief but lucid and
comprehensive fashion, drawing the architectural blueprint, so to speak, for
the forthcoming reading. This chapter covers a wide range of origin, content
and development, areas that are to be expanded and further developed in the
following chapters. The irst part also treats the so-called Old Charges (chapter
3) – the supposed link between medieval stonemasons and Enlightenment
Freemasonry – especially through the Regius (early 1400s) and Cook (early-mid
1400s) manuscripts. Andrew Prescott stresses the importance of comparative
studies regarding such guild documents in Europe. This is a good point, since
it would widen the perspective on the origin of Freemasonry from the discussion of Scottish or English origins, and shed light on why the initiatory society
was born on British soil. Prescott’s section foreshadows this polemical origin
debate (Scotland vs. England), which expands in the following two chapters.
Chapters four and ive unfold two different ideas of where to place the
origin. David Stevenson argues for Scotland, mainly leaning on the William
Schaw “statutes” (1598, 1599), while Matthew D.J. Scanlan places the origin
in England. He stresses a methodological law: the tendency to misinterpret
commonly used terms, such as “freemason”, with the consequence that entire
arguments are based on misconceptions of the true meanings and importance
of the terms involved. Scanlan concludes his chapter by dismantling the term
© 2016 Peter Olsson
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
139
in question, which is contextualized and reinterpreted in order to prove his
thesis of Freemasonry’s English origin. Both scholars present well-argued
evidence for their respective positions; however, though the discussion of
where to situate the irst Freemasonic lodges is of historical interest, the question is always at risk of coming down to prestige. In my opinion, considering
that building guilds similar to the British ones also existed on the Continent,
the question of origin becomes far more interesting in a broader European
perspective, calling for comparative studies between documents, contexts and
milieus that bear resemblance to the English ones.
The remaining chapters explicate the Masonic adoption of templarism
and chivalry, and by extension the development of “High Degrees”, and also
explore Freemasonry’s role in the Enlightenment by using Benjamin Franklin
as a case study. Part one concludes with a short chapter on Masonic historiography, tracing the history and development of the study of Freemasonry.
The second section (chapters 9–16) centers on a religious theme, dealing
with the often complicated relationship between Freemasonry and speciic
religious traditions. The chapters cover Christianity, Judaism, Islam, and Eastern
religions, closing with the inluence of Western esotericism and new religious
movements. We are shown various accusations against Freemasonry, which in
many cases were based on the secrecy with which Masons were considered to
be cloaking themselves, not uncommonly giving rise to conspiracy theories.
Such accusations are discussed alongside various notions of Freemasonry,
in diverse phases and milieus, at times ascribed an antagonistic role and
occasionally intermingled with the other religious traditions in question. The
chapters in this second part of the volume work well together, seeming to
collectively build up a dynamic, luid narrative that lends luency to the reading.
The religious theme culminates with Robert Jan van Pelt’s intriguing
contribution concerning liaisons between Freemasonry and Judaism (chapter
12). This complex and often wrongly understood relationship is outlined
in a lucid fashion, with consideration of both traditional inluences and
conspiracy theories. In this section Pelt discusses religious, social, political, and
apocalyptic aspects of the (real and imagined) connection between Judaism and
Freemasonry. He initially deals with the complexity, and by extension dificulty,
of interpreting inluences and transfers between traditions: “If we ind Old
Testament themes in, for example Freemasonry, then we must follow the chain
of inluence in proper order, moving from the closest relation to the most
remote.” (189) By following these traces, van Pelt concludes that the content
from the Old Testament that found its way into Freemasonry is derived from
140
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
the King James Bible rather than the Tanakh. Overall, the extensive chapter on
Freemasonry and Judaism is one of the volume’s pinnacles – on its own it will
attract many readers to the Handbook. However, it might have been interesting to
see a chapter in this section dedicated to conspiracy theories about Freemasonry
alone, thereby opening up a discussion of phenomena such as the Illuminati.
Moving away from conventional religious traditions and their relation to
Freemasonry, chapter 15 explicates the inluence of Western esotericism on
Freemasonry, exploring particular discourses and currents to explain the transfer of esoteric traits into Masonic structures. Treating concepts of initiation and
esoteric knowledge, Bogdan emphasizes “the experience and interpretation of the
ritual [as] the esoteric message,” (282) further connecting it to a transmutative
effect upon the initiate in a way that is consistent with his underlying idea of
gnosis as both intellectual and experiential knowledge.1 The chapter continues
to display how esoteric traits intermingle and become embedded mainly in the
“High Degrees,” even though the inluence varies considerably between different systems (Rites) and degrees, as well as particular times and locations, in order
to deine Freemasonry as typiied by initiatory rather than secret organizations.
Part three (chapters 17–21) focuses on sociological traits, including the inner
structures of Freemasonry (i.e. initiation, rites and systems) and compares them
with other societies. Snoek’s initial piece (chapter 17) on rituals of initiation as
an instrumental part of Freemasonry is not only neat and expositive, but also
illustrative of how the volume’s chapters are interconnected, as his discussion
contains links to chapters on historical and esoteric content. Within the thematic
framework of sociology, Kristiane Hasselmann (chapter 18) provides us with
a section on the boundary to psychology, examining the idea of the “nature
of Masonic rituals as speciic practices of the self.” (329) Her focus is on how
English “gentlemen Freemasonry” adopts a new philosophy aimed at shaping
a performative habitus, which in turn reines the lodge members morally and
spiritually and modiies their patterns of behavior. Unfortunately, her text and
interesting analysis are weighted down by a large amount of (often heavy)
quotations, which is a pity since the theory and the arguments are of great value.
Arturo de Hoyos (chapter 19) guides us through the rise and development
of different Masonic Rites and systems, in a chapter that treats administrative
or governmental authority regarding initiation or instruction. Describing and
explaining some of the separate forms of rite that came into existence, and
1
Bogdan, Henrik, “New Perspectives on Western Esotericism,” Nova Religio: The Journal
of Alternative and Emergent Religions 13, no. 3 (2010): 97–105; Bogdan, Henrik, “Introduction:
Modern Western Magic,” Aries: Journal for the Study of Western Esotericism 12, no. 1 (2012): 1–16.
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
141
covering various times and places, Hoyos creates a much-needed ‘Rite-map,’
sorting out the complexities of diverse Masonic systems.
Despite the well laid out elucidation of Masonic rites in this section, at least
two further developments would have made it even stronger. The Swedish
Rite is presented, although a more profound treatment would have been interesting considering the system’s unique stance in only accepting Christianity
as a foundation, more or less excluding the concept of the “Great Architect”
that is more inclusive of Judaic and Islamic interpretations. Also, given the
complexity of Freemasonry’s inner structure and hierarchies, together with the
Rites and Systems, a couple of diagrams would have created additional clarity.
The penultimate part imbricates with the preceding section and presents a
socio-political theme dealing with Freemasonry’s relation to feminism, race, colonialism, and adjoining issues like nationalism and war. The section opens with
the role of women in Freemasonry (chapter 22). We are told that in addition
to the existence of Adoption Freemasonry (c. 1774), quite a large number of
mixed orders were created from the mid-1700s onwards – partly as a result of
the emergence of “quasi-masonic” orders – with the Hermetic Order of the
Golden Dawn (1887) as a prime example. In this chapter – “Freemasonry and
Women” – Snoek portrays Adoption Freemasonry not as anti-feminist, but as a
part of the progress of feminism. He emphasizes this Masonic movement as “a
form of women’s emancipation avant la lettre,” (411) thus arguing that the female
orders preceded rather than mirrored feminism. He provides us with an outline
of the manner of female participation in Masonic orders, and describes how
they obtained creative control over the handling and workings of Masonic rituals.
The issue of nationalism (chapter 25) and Freemasonry is treated by Jeffrey
Tyssens. Basing his argument on discourse theory, he cautions against presuming that identities are ixed categories. The fraternity is examined as a historical
agent used by both pro- and counter-nationalistic movements, “a kind of
ideological palimpsest where different identity projects have been written one
over the other.” (463) Thus, Freemasonry both promotes national cohesion
and works as a bridge between nations by forming new identity patterns.
The concluding part (chapters 27–31) places Freemasonry within culture
and art, starting with music and closing with material culture. Part ive also
considers subjects such as literature, primarily the literature of Freemasonry,
modern art and architecture. Marijo Ariëns-Volker (chapter 29) connects
the fraternity to modern art, emphasizing the fact that Freemasonry has
always been attractive to artists. The chapter illuminates the interconnected
traits between different schools of art and Masonry. We are guided through
142
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
Romanticism and Martinism and related persons and currents, in connection
with a somewhat esoteric Masonic context, and the transfer of ideas between
these various domains. It should be mentioned that despite starting off with
Freemasonry, a great part of this chapter deals with occult currents closely
related to various Masonic offshoots, such as Martinès de Pasqually’s Ordre
des Chevaliers Maçons Elus Cohen.
The penultimate chapter connects to the volume’s irst chapter. James
Stevens Curl’s research on Freemasonry and architecture outlines the tools
of the stonemason and how they are connected both to architecture and the
speculative aspects of the craft. The chapter concentrates on “the more subtle
aspects that suggest a Masonic thread,” (560) ignoring buildings where the
Masonic aspect is no more than a representation of a symbol. It is a perspicuous
presentation of Masonry’s relation to architecture, including historical traits
and various styles, as well as both indoor and outdoor designs with Masonic
overtones. Curl returns to his initial exposition and wraps up the chapter with
quite a harsh assault on modernity, especially concerning architecture.
The volume brings together eminent scholars on Freemasonry and the
articles are generally commendable, both in terms of the historical data they
bring to light and in terms of their analyses. The book’s form is itself a piece of
grand architecture – the initial chapters create solid ground which permits the
latter chapters to unfold more chiseled details. The chapters mutually enhance
each other, as do the thematic parts, and are conjoined in a logical fashion; the
consonance in content and composition reveals a irm and proicient editorial
hand. It is hard to criticize the Handbook of Freemasonry on account of its
content without nitpicking – the omissions discussed previously are the only
drawbacks of this tidy, well-balanced volume.
These minor objections notwithstanding, the volume is strongly recommended to both scholars specialized in the ield of Freemasonry and those
focusing either on cultural studies or the history of religions in general. To sum
up, the volume contributes signiicantly to the understanding of Freemasonry
with its diverse entries and points of focus. The Handbook of Freemasonry likely
qualiies as the most signiicant work to have been published on Freemasonry in
recent years, and will be a source of great importance for years to come, both in
terms of its theoretical developments and as a reliable source for consultation.
Peter Olsson
peterjackolsson@gmail.com
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
143
Philippa Townsend and Moulie Vidas, eds. Revelation, Literature, and Community
in Late Antiquity. Tübingen: Mohr Siebeck, 2011. viii + 368 pp. ISBN: 978-316-150644-4. Cloth €109. ISBN 978-3-16-151859-1. eBook PDF €109,00
The title of Revelation, Literature, and Community in Late Antiquity leaves more
to the imagination than one might suppose at irst glance, given the vast
and fascinating terrain it seeks to map. The book is a set of revised papers
from a conference held at Princeton University in 2007, supplemented by
additional solicited essays. The studies contained therein tackle the themes in
question across a diversity of sources—ancient Jewish and Christian, Gnostic,
Neoplatonic, Rabbinic, apocalyptic, zoroastrian, and Islamic—extending from
roughly the last centuries BCE to the beginning of the second millennium
CE. (The volume’s title is thus a bit misleading on this point, to its detriment,
since the collection is a ine example in the virtues of taking a look not at
“late antiquity”—usually construed as third–seventh centuries CE—but,
roughly, the entire irst millennium CE.)1 The roster of contributors strikes a
healthy balance between established, senior voices and a veritable “who’s-who”
of younger scholars who trained at (and, in several cases, now serve on the
faculties of) elite North American universities.
The essays are arranged in loose chronological order, beginning with the
Enochic literature and Graeco-Roman and Christian sources of the second–
fourth centuries, before proceeding to Rabbinic, zoroastrian, and Islamic
materials. The editors, Philippa Townsend and Moulie Vidas, open the volume
with a useful status quaestionis on prophecy and revelation in late ancient religion—an essay itself worthy of examination and reference, unlike many
introductions to Sammelbände—before declaring the volume’s goal to be examination of “the contrast between revelation and human artifact and the
connection between revelation and historiography.” (13)
Anne Yoshiko Reed examines how “models from biblical prophecy may
have shaped the depiction of revelation” throughout the various works which
comprise 1 Enoch, as well as the reception of these works and the igure of
Enoch more widely in late ancient Jewish and Christian literature (27). While
“the image of Enoch as prophet seems to have taken shape particularly in
1
See e.g. Garth Fowden, Before and After Muhammad: The First Millennium Refocused (Princeton:
Princeton University Press, 2014).
© 2016 Dylan M. Burns
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
144
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
the second to third centuries C.E.” amongst Christians, (38) it is an image
which would enjoy “vibrant afterlives in Manichaeism and Islam,” but not late
antique Judaism, which saw him “not as a prophet, but rather—yet again—as
a scribe.” (40) Christine Trevett surveys early Christian evidence pertaining to
the economics surrounding prophetic activity, particularly as regards the New
Prophecy, which made provisions for its itinerant prophets as well as its settled
leaders (63). In doing so, “the New Prophets were reviving and developing a
practice with which some Christians of earlier generations would have been familiar.” (58) Pavlos Avlamis examines the sociohistorical and literary dynamics
informing the epiphany of Isis in the Life of Aesop, where the goddess appears
“as the exotic force of adventure-time” as a challenge to elite, Hellenic institutions represented in the novel by Apollo, opening “possibilities of a double
vision for Greek eyes, and for a narrative that relects upon the everyday and
the ubiquitous through the fantasy of the outsider.” (93, 101)
Meanwhile, John D. Turner looks at the use of revelatory language to
describe the achievement of a state of “learned ignorance” in the Platonizing
Sethian apocalypse Allogenes (NHC XI,3). Turner believes this language to
relect not only literary artiice, but “a genuine description of a psychological
experience” on the part of the text’s author (114). Gregory Shaw tackles the “dual
reference” of divine and profane “realized through revelatory experience…
described by Platonists of late antiquity,” particularly Iamblichus of Chalcis
in his famous exposition of theurgy, On the Mysteries (118). Iamblichus, Shaw
inds, is not simply concerned with abstruse metaphysics or ritual theory, but
the mechanics and experience of revelation, which, encountered in the realms
of embodiment, “must begin with our wounds” and traumas, as explicated
in Orphic myth (129; also 121–22). Daniel L. Schwartz shows how fourthcentury Christian liturgical discourse, despite great “emphasis on secrecy and
the revelation of secrets” suggests “that the ideal of secrecy was not rigorously
maintained.” (132; similarly, 141) “Precisely because the disciplina arcani was in
many ways an open secret, the emphasis could not be on the conveyance of
information,” but a sense of community (151). Eduard Iricinschi analyzes the
anti-Manichaean writings of Augustine of Hippo, who “draws the picture of
two conlicting book cultures, one Manichaean and the other one Christian,
articulated by two different cosmologies, yet whose points of contentions
revolve around ways of reading and interpreting the Bible.” (175)
Moving into a ‘late’ Late Antiquity, Azzan Yadin-Israel takes up the Rabbinic
hero Rabbi Aqiva, addressing “the dramatic difference in the way Rabbi Aquiva’s
midrash is represented in tannaitic versus post-tannaitic sources…The familiar
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
145
portrait of Rabbi Aqiva as a brilliant interpreter of Scripture is only attested in
the latter. Tannaitic sources, in contrast, represent Rabbi Aqiva as…committed
to the priority of extra-scriptural traditions.” (178; also 207) Ironically, YadinIsrael suggests, it is “precisely Rabbi Aqiva’s loose allegiance to Scripture in the
tannaitic sources that (at least in part) paves the way” for his later reputation as
a master of Scripture (215). Martha Himmelfarb shows how the early Medieval
apocalypses Sefer Zerubbabel and Sefer Eliyyahu “take a signiicantly different
approach to the process of revelation and to the eschatological scenario
revealed” than one inds in earlier apocalyptic literature (220), outlining new
prospects for research on both texts (235–36). Examining the famous motif
of four-world ages—with the fourth characterized by mixture and iron (e.g.
Dan 2:43)—Yuhan Sohrab-Dinshaw Vevaina demonstrates that “in the Pahlavi
texts this literary-historical schema is mobilized in characteristically zoroastrian
ways which, while sharing certain striking similarities with Hesiod and Daniel,
are…best understood by examining their use of apocalyptic rhetoric”—i.e.,
reading the Pahlavi texts on their own terms and with reference to the struggles
and concerns of their authors and intended audience (238, 267–68).
The volume concludes with two particularly strong essays concerning the
arrival in the Near East of the new revelation of Islam. Michael Pregill offers a
“prolegomena” to a “comparative prophetology” across Judaism, Christianity,
and Islam in late antiquity (272, 313) by way of reviewing the exegeses of
1 Kings 22 concocted by Araham Ibn Ezra (d. 1164) and Bar Penkāyē (late
7th cent. CE). What he inds is that Islamic discourse about prophecy—and
Jewish and Christian responses to it—have “authentically pre-Islamic roots,”
and therefore “Jewish and Christian interest in prophecy” following the rise
of Islam “should not be considered an exclusively post-Islamic phenomenon,”
but a part of the expansion of Torah to “a widespread, almost ubiquitous,
touchstone of religious identity and communal organization.” (298–99, 273)
Patricia Crone† seeks “to identify what the so-called polytheists (mushrikūn) in
the Qur’an took a messenger from God to be.” (316) By way of incisive exegesis
with attention to Jewish and Christian biblical and parabiblical traditions,
Crone demonstrates that the polytheists “were, or at least included followers
of Moses” who believed (as did the author of the Moses Apocryphon [4Q377]
and some Rabbinic writers) that God Himself had appeared to Moses and
the Israelites at Sinai, and that revelatory knowledge was acquired via ascent,
rather than transmitted downwards, despite Muhammad’s claim to the latter
(327–28, 331–33). Rather than simply identifying the polytheists as “Jewish” or
“Christian,” Crone closes the article (and volume) appropriately by calling for
146
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
historians to “map the theological landscape of the Near East at the time of
the rise of Islam” with reference to more “diverse possibilities with reference
to the pre-Qur’anic literature.” (336)
The essays are for the most part well-written and incisive; editorial quality
is high, with typos mostly conined to two essays. The contributions’ overall
strength and coherence as a group lend Revelation, Literature, and Community a
value exceeding the sum of its parts, particularly for specialists in the religions
of the late ancient/irst-millennium Mediterranean. The present reviewer
was especially struck by essays that successfully juggled Jewish, Christian,
and Islamic sources alike in mapping out trajectories of revelatory literature
and claims (e.g. Reed, Pregill, Crone), and the continued relevance (despite
criticisms and re-tooling) of Max Weber’s old model of charismatic and rationalized leadership in religious communities (highlighted by Trevett, 52).
There is little to quibble with in terms of presentation, although it is worth
noting that several of the essays will be nigh-impenetrable to non-specialists
(e.g. Yadin-Israel); nonetheless, most take pains to achieve readability beyond
the conines of their ield (Shaw, Turner, and Vevaina, writing with relative
distance from Biblical Studies, excel here).
Readers of Correspondences might ask if the papers are relevant to the study
of esotericism. They are—although they do not engage with scholarship on
‘Western esotericism’—insofar as their explorations of revelation necessarily entail the study of secrecy and concealment (as recognized by Schwartz,
132). Therefore the volume (however inadvertently) may join other useful
collections of studies of secrecy, revelation, and esotericism in the History
of Religions.2 The signiicance of this literature for students of esotericism
is dificult to miss. Indeed, the very fact that a set of papers on revelation
in the irst millennium CE necessarily veers into the realms of apocalyptic,
visionary, Gnostic, and Neoplatonic literature—without at all having set out to
look at ‘mysticism’ or ‘esotericism’—should indicate the central importance that
the dynamic of secrecy and revelation holds for any construal of ‘esotericism’
2
E.g., Hans Kippenberg and Guy G. Stoumsa, eds., Secrecy and Concealment: Studies in the
History of Mediterranean and Near Eastern Religions (Leiden: Brill, 1995); Roelof van den Broek
and Wouter J. Hanegraaff, eds., Gnosis and Hermeticism from Antiquity to Modern Times (Syracuse:
SUNY Press, 1997); Christian H. Bull, Liv Ingeborg Lied and John D. Turner, eds., Mystery and
Secrecy in the Nag Hammadi Collection and Other Ancient Literature: Ideas and Practices. Studies for Einar
Thomassen at Sixty (Leiden: Brill, 2011); April D. DeConick and Grant Adamson, eds., Histories
of the Hidden God: Concealment and Revelation in Western Gnostic, Esoteric, and Mystical Traditions
(Durham/Bristol: Acumen, 2013); Caroline Vander Stichele and Susanne Scholz, eds., Hidden
Truths from Eden: Esoteric Readings of Genesis 1–3 (Atlanta: SBL Press, 2014).
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
147
as a second-order term. Conversely, the volume’s wealth of meditation upon
the interface of revelatory phenomena with the delineation of new religious
communities should prove useful for those interested in the sorts of problems raised by claims made with reference to otherworldly authority. The
greater conluence of revelatory claims and the various currents scholars have
attempted to understand by recourse to the construct of ‘esotericism’ awaits
thorough exploration, but the present volume offers many hints as to where
such an investigation should begin. Revelation, Literature, and Community in Late
Antiquity thus proves to be an excellent body of studies that will interest scholars of Judaism, Christianity, Zoroastrianism, and Islam in the irst millennium
CE, and proves relevant and insightful reading for students of Gnosticism,
mysticism, and esotericism, however these terms may be deined.
Dylan M. Burns
dylan.burns@fu-berlin.de
148
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
Olav Hammer and Mikael Rothstein, eds. Handbook of the Theosophical Current.
Leiden and Boston: Brill, 2013. xii + 494 pp. ISBN: 978-90-04-23596-0. $234
Within the history of Western esoteric currents and new religious movements
(NRMs) in the nineteenth century and beyond, few organizations—whether
in terms of historical impact, peak membership size, or subsequent discursive
inluence—tower as high as the Theosophical Society. As remarked by this
present volume’s editors, “the formation of the Theosophical Society … and
the main events linked to the fate of this organization, its key igure Helena
Blatavsky (1831–1891), and her immediate successors belong to the short list
of pivotal chapters of religious history in the West.”1 At its absolute peak in
1928, the Theosophical Society was composed of 45098 due-paying members,
spread throughout 1586 chartered lodges operating within the United States,
India, England, and Australia.2 From this membership, very respectable for an
occultist group, emerged a vast corpus of literature which came to shape and
deine esoteric discourse throughout the late nineteenth and twentieth centuries. Not only does the Theosophical current “and its multiple offshoots [stand]
as one of the world’s most important religious traditions” in and of itself,3 but it
is hard to locate a Western esoteric current alive today whose discourses are not
genealogical relatives of or descendants from those discourses which constitute
the Theosophical current, with Blavatsky herself essentially functioning as a
discursive nodal point, setting the stage for the ways in which modern esoteric
currents approach the relationships between religious and scientiic discourses.4
Given the importance of both the Theosophical Society and the Theosophical
current to the history of NRMs and esoteric currents in the West, it comes off
as a surprise that both remain “vastly understudied religious manifestations”
within present-day academia.5 While there do exist documentary studies of the
original Theosophical Society, as well as biographical accounts of its founders,
1
Olav Hammer and Mikael Rothstein, “Introduction,” in Handbook of the Theosophical Current, 1.
Gregory John Tillett, Charles Webster Leadbeater, 1854–1934: A Biographical Study (Sydney:
University of Sydney, 1986), 942–50.
3
Hammer and Rothstein, “Introduction,” 2.
4
Kocku von Stuckrad, The Scientiication of Religion: An Historical Study of Discursive Change,
1800–2000 (Berlin: Walter de Gruyter 2014), 98.
5
Hammer and Rothstein, “Introduction,” 2.
2
© 2016 Christopher A. Plaisance
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
149
broad treatments of the Theosophical current itself and of the multitude of
organizations birthed by the Theosophical Society are practically nonexistent. It
is precisely this dearth in scholarship that Hammer and Rothstein seek to rectify
with the Handbook of the Theosophical Current—with their stated ambition being
to produce a volume which covers “a reasonable range of topics concerning the
history and impact of Theosophy,” without purporting to be “a complete survey
of a ield of vast dimensions.”6 Towards this end, Hammer and Rothstein’s
volume collects twenty chapters from an interdisciplinary cross-section of
senior and junior scholars—all of whose prior works have contributed to the
body of scholarship on the Theosophical current, and many of whom are
recognized as leading experts on the subject. There are some conspicuous
absences within this group of authors—most notably James A. Santucci,
Robert S. Ellwood, James R. Lewis, and Wouter J. Hanegraaff—who might be
expected as contributors to a volume covering this territory. However, these
absences do not detract from the overall quality of the book’s contents.
The book is divided into three sections, each of which is tightly focused on a
speciic aspect of scholarly inquiry. The irst section, “Theosophical Societies,”
is composed of four chapters that chronologically set out the history of the
subject in terms of the irst, second, and third generations of Theosophy.
Throughout these seventy-four pages, authors Jocelyn Godwin, Catherine
Wessinger, Tim Rudbøg, and W. Michael Ashcraft collectively present what
is perhaps the most complete history of the successive incarnations of the
Theosophical Society, from the foundation of the original society in 1875 by
Blavatsky and Henry Steel Olcott (1832–1907); through the second generation
of leadership in Adyar with Annie Besant (1847–1933), Charles W. Leadbeater
(1854–1934), and Katherine Tingley (1847–1929); to the third generation,
spanning the Theosophical Society (both Adyar and Pasadena branches) and
the United Lodge of Theosophists (Los Angeles) in the twentieth century and
beyond. Each author in this section expertly treats their respective historical
period, the result of which is an all but unrivaled chronological history of the
Theosophical societies, over a period spanning two hundred years.
The second section, “Religious Currents in the Wake of Theosophy,” collects
eight chapters that variously treat distinct currents, movements, and organizations
which emerged out of the core Theosophical current or the Theosophical Society.
As with the preceding section, the topics are handled with very high degrees
of scholarly care, attention to proper documentation and critical reasoning.
The resulting picture, while not encyclopedic in nature, presents a very broad
6
Hammer and Rothstein, “Introduction,” 4, 11.
150
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
picture of post-Theosophical currents—some of which are likely to be familiar
to students of Western esotericism, but others of which may not be. This
reviewer was quite pleased to see treatments of currents more traditionally linked
with Theosophy—such as Katharina Brandt and Olav Hammer’s chapter on
Rudolph Steiner’s Anthroposophy, Sean O’Callaghan’s chapter on Alice Bailey’s
Theosophical Christology, or Hammer’s chapter, “Theosophical Elements in
New Age Religion”—featured alongside those dealing with topics which have
received much less scholarly attention—notably, Michael Abravanel’s work on
the Summit Lighthouse group, Anita Stasulane’s chapter on Nicholas and Helena
Roerich, and Mikael Rothstein’s “Mahatmas in Space: The Ufological Turn and
Mythological Materiality of Post-World War II Theosophy.”
The third section, “Theosophy, Culture, and Society,” assembles eight
chapters that deal with a broad variety of thematic topics, allowing in-depth
discussions of key aspects of the Theosophical current. While less structured
in terms of content than the preceding two sections, this collection of chapters
coheres well in presenting a variety of topics that coalesce around the general
subject of interactions between the Theosophical current and areas of Western
culture and society outside of the current sensu stricto. The section begins with
a chapter by the late Nicholas Goodrick-Clarke, which masterfully situates the
Theosophical current within the broader framework of the study of Western
esotericism—charting the genealogy of the current as it relates to a wide
variety of esoteric currents, such as 19th century Christian Theosophy, the
Hermetic Brotherhood of Luxor, and Freemasonry. Subsequent chapters
deal with topics ranging from social issues such as orientalism (Christopher
Partridge’s “Lost Horizon: H.P. Blavatsky and Theosophical Orientalism”),
race (Isaac Lubelsky’s “Mythological and Real Race Issues in Theosophy), and
gender (Siv Ellen Kraft’s “Theosophy, Gender and the ‘New Woman’”); to
more intellectual problems (Garry W. Trompf ’s discussion of macrohistorical
discourses within the Theosophical current and Egil Asprem’s astute analysis
of “Theosophical Attitudes towards Science”); to a pair of thematically linked
chapters assessing Theosophy’s impact on visual art (Tessel M. Bauduin’s
“Abstract Art as ‘By-Product of Astral Manifestation’: The Inluence of
Theosophy on Modern Art in Europe”), and the impact of popular iction
on Theosophical discourse and vice versa (Ingvild Sælid Gilhus and Lisbeth
Mikaelson’s “Theosophy and Popular Fiction”). In each case, the chapters
within this section make powerful contributions to the scholarly discussion of
their respective topics as they relate to Theosophy.
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
151
As a whole, the Handbook of the Theosophical Current is a remarkably cohesive
volume. Edited collections containing articles aimed at specialist audiences
are often plagued by a lack of cohesion, with it often being hard to imagine
a single specialist reader capable of critically evaluating and inding utility in
the volume as a whole. Quite the opposite is true of Hammer and Rothstein’s
book. The handbook is a rare instance of an edited collection where the intended group of specialists should ind each and every individual chapter both
intelligible and utile. The fact of the book’s cohesion, compounded with the
remarkably high quality of the component essays, makes the Handbook of the
Theosophical Current required reading for any scholar whose work touches at all
on the Theosophical Society, its dominant current, or the myriad of related
organizations and movements which emerged in its wake—in practical terms,
this would include virtually all scholars dealing with Western esoteric currents
and NRMs originating from the nineteenth century to the present. As is typical
of books in the Brill Handbooks on Contemporary Religion series, the volume
is handsomely produced, with high quality binding and paper, resulting in a
book which should easily withstand either the rigors of library ownership, or
the heavy reference use of an individual owner. Although the book’s cost will
likely preclude purchase by many individual readers, it is a volume which rightly
belongs within any collection—institutional or personal—devoted in part to
the Theosophical current.
Christopher A. Plaisance
christopher.plaisance@gmail.com
152
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
Asbjørn Dyrendal, James R. Lewis, and Jesper Aa. Petersen. The Invention of Satanism.
New York: Oxford University Press, 2016. 254 pp. ISBN: 978-0-19-518110-4
Dyrendal, Lewis, and Petersen’s book, The Invention of Satanism, focuses on
modern religious Satanism by asking how Satanism was “invented as a declared
or philosophical position, and how it serves as a personal and collective
identity.” (2) In order to answer this central query, the book approaches its
topic as a bricolage (3)—presenting seemingly fragmented discourses on the
satanic, showing how they inform the emergence of modern Satanism, which,
in turn, reinterprets and reframes these discourses. The goal of the book is to
present foundational historical knowledge that culminates with and expands
on our understanding of modern religious Satanism. Each of the authors
have published on this topic separately, and this present collaboration is an
accessible and solid introductory text to the ever-growing scholarly discourse
on religious Satanism.1
The book begins by offering a brief survey of anthropological studies on
lateral topics: witches, demons, and magic. The chapter correctly claims that
ideas surrounding misfortune and malevolence relect the personal and social
concerns of any particular group. The authors track the concept of cosmic
evil from ancient zoroastrianism and its opposing dual forces, to Judaism’s
notions of an obstructer or accuser of Yahweh (in Job, this accuser is called
a generic title: (Heb.) “ha-satan”), to a fully developed personiication of evil
within Christian theological discourse (where evil gets a proper name: Satan).
This anthropomorphized framing of evil is discussed in terms of its sociopolitical development, as satanic rhetoric mirrors Christian tensions with
external secular powers and internal heretical exegeses.
Tracing satanic rhetoric into the Enlightenment, the book discusses ictional
portrayals of the devil in Romantic literature, where he came to represent ideals
of liberty and intellectual pursuits. This depiction of Satan as a symbol of
1
For other recent academic books on Satanism, see: Reuben van Luijk, Children of Lucifer:
the Origins of Modern Religious Satanism (New York: Oxford University Press, 2016); Massimo
Introvigne, Satanism: A Social History (Leiden: Brill, 2016); Per Faxneld, Satanic Feminism: Lucifer
as the Liberator of Women in Nineteenth-Century Culture (Stockholm: Molin & Sorgenfrei, 2014);
Per Faxneld and Jesper Aa. Petersen, eds. The Devil’s Party: Satanism in Modernity (New York:
Oxford University Press, 2013).
© 2016 Cimminnee Holt
This is an open-access article distributed under the terms of the
Creative Commons Attribution-NonCommercial 4.0 International License.
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
153
freedom, antinomianism, and individualism is then a springboard for various
authors described in the chapter on “Satanic Precursors.” People such as Ben
Kadosh, Stanislaw Przybyssewki, Maria de Naglowska, and Aleister Crowley
use the image of Lucifer or Satan for “vitality, elitism, carnality, artistic and
scientiic creativity.” (36) The “European esoteric scene” and its conluence
of occultism, theosophy, magic, and science produced the foundational ideas
of modern Satanism (46).
The following chapters—four through nine—are the true meat of the book.
Having outlined narratives that inform modern Satanism, the end chapters
discuss how these narratives congeal in various religious and popular interpretations. These chapters outline Anton Szandor LaVey and his founding of the
Church of Satan, its major schism, the Temple of Set founded by ex-Church
of Satan Magister, Michael Aquino, and other persons and groups that identify as religiously satanic, such as the group garnering recent media attention
with sensationalized promotional events, the Satanic Temple. Of note is the
discussion on The Satanic Bible (arguably the primary text inluencing Satanism
today, published by LaVey in 1969) and LaVey’s strongly contested biographical details. The creation of the The Satanic Bible and its ostensible plagiarism,
LaVey’s claims about magic as science, his lure and disdain for the occult milieu,
his tension with detractors, friends, journalists and scholars alike, all frame
LaVey as a provocative igure deliberately engaging with a “demonographical”
charismatic authority (100). The line between fantasy and reality, within The
Satanic Bible as well as in LaVey’s life story, are presented as a dual “mixture
of the reactive, the esoteric, and the rationalist” (ibid). As the authors explain:
The carnivalesque attitude sometimes displayed in ritual and social settings probably did no harm in the countercultural environment. Add in inspiration from
contemporary sociology and psychology in the use of popular occultism and the
human potential movement, and LaVey had mixed his own cocktail of the ideas
loating around in the occulture of his time. (65)
As Satanism expands beyond its controversial founder, it is enmeshed with
notions of legitimacy and authority, and presents challenges to deinitions of
religion and magic. As other groups and individuals engage with LaVey and The
Satanic Bible, continually modifying and reinterpreting Satanism, the “satanic
milieu” (71) becomes constant in its consistent draw and fascination, but also
transitory in terms of the high turnover of self-identifying Satanists, apart
from select stable satanic organizations.
154
Book Reviews / Correspondences 4 (2016) 129–154
Also of note is the chapter on the Satanic Ritual Abuse scare of the late
1980s and early 1990s, a moral panic resulting in a modern-day witch-hunt,
based on limsy evidence, coaxed confessions, and the now debunked “repressed memory syndrome.” (125–29) This chapter, while not directly about
active religious Satanists, is perhaps one of the strongest, as it demonstrates
that Satanism, iltered through theological discourse and popular fears, allowed
large segments of the population to project “folklore about Satan unto
Satanism” and be convinced of a bizarre conspiracy theory about “a vast,
underground network of evil satanic cults sacriicing and abusing children.”
(103) If, in the Middle Ages, accusations of heretical “Satanism” relected
religio-political conlicts of the medieval church, so too did the modern-day
so-called “Satanic Panic.” Despite having little to do with real religious Satanism,
the popular obsession with all things “satanic” allowed people to imagine
heinous fantasies, and inject their anxieties into the social problem du jour.
Another distinctive aspect of this particular contribution to the ield of Satanism studies are the chapters dealing with online surveys conducted by James R.
Lewis. Though these sections are reworked material from previous article publications (not uncommon as an academic practice), they provide demographical
statistics from a sociological perspective. Perhaps these chapters may read as
somewhat dense to the novice reader unfamiliar with unpacking the charts, percentages, and survey questions that are integral to statistical analysis, but scholars
will ind use in the hard data, as such surveys are rare given the reclusive and
secretive nature of most Satanists. These chapters provide a welcome glimpse
into the satanic world, outside of canonical literature and oficial sources.
The Invention of Satanism provides a solid overview of the history of satanic
discourse, theological framings, literary portrayals, conspiracy theories, as well
as the continued obsession with Satanism in the popular mind, and the manner
in which all these currents inform modern practicing religious Satanism as
it continues to grow and shift. It contributes to the ield as a respectable
introductory academic text on religious Satanism, perhaps best suited for undergraduates or those unfamiliar with Satanism and scholarly approaches to it.
Cimminnee Holt
cim.holt@gmail.com